Cbe Spfrituii JBessage of literatire mm»BS0m MtMM ■ ■ u-^iimm^iimViimi^imtiii^iiJ^iiii&il^f^fSVt^^ ■ ■ '' •^H^^^!tsmd:ss&S!mismfi^i^ FROM THE INCOME OF THE FISKE ENDOWMENT FUND THE BEQUEST OF I^ibrarian of the University 1868-1883 1905 1 ft -^9^ 5^0 lolniS'. 3184 Cornell University Library PN 49.G98 The original of tliis book is in tlie Cornell University Library. There are no known copyright restrictions in the United States on the use of the text. http://www.archive.org/details/cu31924027094063 At the end of the book will be found more extended notices of the following works by the same author: Of Communion with God Life, Times and Pfiilosopfiy of Plotinos Tfie Message of Philo Judaeus Numenius of Apamea, Works, Life and Teachings The Gathas, or Hymns of Zoroaster, in English The Greeic 'PjIgMm's Ptogtess/ or, the Picture, by Kebes A Garland of Fancies; A Garland of Aspirations Friendship Hymns to the Universal Divinity THE SPIRITUAL MESSAGE OF LITERATURE A Manual of Comparative Literature With Topical Outlines, and Lists of Useful Books For School, College, and Private Study By Kenneth Sylvan Guthrie, A.M., Harvard; Ph.D., Tulane; M.D., Med.-Chi., Philada. COMPARATIVE LITERATURE PRESS Brooklyn: 182 Monroe Street; London: Hendersons, 66 Charing Cross Rd, WC 7h Copyright, 1905, by L. Elma Drury. All Rights Reserved. Entered at Stationer's Hall, by Thomas H. Hen- derson, 27 Paternoster Square, London, E.G. Copyright, 19 13, BY KENNETH SYLVAN GUTHRIE INDEX Book I. What is Comparative Literature? Chaptet I Definition of Comparative Literature, i How Literature becomes Comparative. The Existence of a Human Problem. The Riddle of the Sphinx. Ur- gency of the Problem: International. American and Modern. Chapter II The International Human Problem, vi General Common Elements. More Detailed Analysis of Life. Significance of these Elements. Chapter III Definitions of Prophecy, xi Prophecy is not Prediction, Dogma, Exegesis or Theo- logy, Ecclesiasticism, Sermonizing or Versifying; it is Sincerity, Scholarship, Divine Discontent, Inspiration. Prophetic Art and other Arts. The Prophecy of the Past, of the Future, and of To-day. Book II. Racial Prophetic Elements. Introduction I Chapter I The Hindu, Persian and Arabian Sources 5 The Hindus: Generosity. Readiness to Forgive. Moral Desert. Spiritual Culture. Deification. Compassion. Fidelity. The Persians: Veracity. Marital Fidelity. The Arabians: Resignation Chapter II The Chinese and Japanese Sources 25 The Chinese: Moderation. Duty and Righteousness Character. Divine Filiality. The Japanese: Tender Friendship. INDEX Chapter III The Semitic Sources 35 The Egyptians: Judgment. Manifestation to Light The AssYRio- Babylonians: Intellectual Culture. Divine Coinmunion The Zarashustrians: Purity. The Angelic Hierarchy, The Christ, and the Renovation Millennium. The Divine Fire Chapter IV The Hellenic Sources 52 The Greeks; Heroic Magnanimity. Social Success. Objectivity Chapter V The Surviving Aboriginal Sources 57 The Nahuatls: Love of Flowers The Uncontaminated Aborigines: Chapter VI The Northern Sources 61 The Islansic World: Bardism. Manliness Bk III. Spiritual Message of Lyric Prophecy Introduction 65 Chapter I The Lyrical Aspiration: Consecration 67 Passion. Pain. Pain's Lesson; Law-Abidingness. Rational Control of the Passions. Purity of Heart. Impartial Love Idolatry. Devotion to God. Chapter II Human Potentialities: Conservation 83 Constructivism. Discipline. Labour. Character. Re- sponsibility, Failure. Ideals. Chapter III The Higher Pantheism: Attainment 99 Immanence in the World. Immanence in the Self. Know Thyself. Divine Destiny. Self Dependence. Divine Discontent. Chapter IV The Transcendent Divine: Initiation 115 Higher Pantheism. Divinity. Divine Love. Divine Wisdom. Salvation INDEX Book IV. Message of Great Dramas. Introduction, 139 Elaborations of Legends The Book of Job, 144 Kschemisvara's Haritschandra, 148 Aeschylos' Prometheus Bound, 154 Shelley's Prometheus Unbound, 160 Other Promethean Dramas, 165 Plato's Republic, 170 Dante Alighieri's Divina Commedia, 176 Calderon's Prodigious Magician, 182 Goethe's Faust, 186 Edgar Quinet's Ahasverus, 191 Longfellow's Golden Legend, 195 Tennyson's Holy Grail, 198 Thomas Hardy's Dynasts, 202 Moody's Masque of Judgment, 205 Dramas of Original Plot Kebes' Greek Pilgrim's Progress, 208 Augustine's City of God, 212 Bunyan's Pilgrim's Progress, 217 Spenser's Faery Queen, 222 Byron's Manfred, 227 Ibsen's Brand, 233 Victor Hugo's God, 238 Tolstoi's Power of Darkness, 244 Madach's Tragedy of Humanity, 248 Wilbrandt's Master of Palmyra, 251 Krasinsky's Infernal Comedy, 253 Campoamor's Universal Drama, 258 Flaubert's 'The Temptation of St. Antliony,' 268 Appendix. Topical Outlines; Lists of Books The Unprinted Anthology and References. It has been said that nothing is good that did not grow out of something different. This present book was originally nothing more than the Introduction to an as yet unprinted Anthology which was to introduce to the English-speaking reader a com- paratively comprehensive survey of the more valu- able works of literary religion and of religious literature which yet are, and may long remain inac- cessible and untranslated. Though this Anthology was laboriously finished over twelve years ago, its issuance is still beyond the writer's means, so that it must yet provisionally remain represented by this summary outline. Nevertheless, even this outline may lay claim to introduction in schools as a text book of Comparative Literature, because even to- day It is still the first reasonably short work to give a comprehensive International view of the evolu- tion of humanity's aspirations. The detailed refer- ences and bibliography at the end of the book will serve both as guarantee for the amateur, and as guide for the student. It is, however, a positive advantage that the text be not burdened, nor the margins choked with references which would prove deterrent to him who seeks only the Spirit- ual Message of Literature — that is, an in- troduction to literature for the enthusiast about human progress, as well as an introduction to the human salvation taught by International literature. R»( BOOK I What is Comparative Literature? About Appreciation qf Aesthetic Values. The most modern critics, the most noisy protag- onists of comparative literature, seem to have infin- ite patience with traditional form and expert tech- nique, divorcing literature and life, form and con- tent, to the very point of exclusion of the melior- ative issue. Not even the writer's best friends, he is glad to say, will be in danger of numbering him among those prophets; for he himself is painfully aware of having used the aesthetic criterion in judg- ment of literary values irregularly. He is perfectly clear that to the wise critic there can be no choice between literature and life, form and content, beau- ty and utility; that their conjunction alone can pro- duce greatness supreme. Unfortunately, the focus of human attention can illuminate only one point at a time; and if error there must be (as the exclus- ively aesthetic judgments of those fashionable critics might lead us to suspect), the writer would rather err on the side of overappreclation of the soterio- loglcal aspects of literature, as most evolutional, progressive and permanent. So he does not scruple to crave Indulgence If his zeal for progress have at times involuntarily led to an apparent overestima- tion of works whose sanative influence is potent, even though perchance their aesthetic value be open to discussion. Nor must we forget the existence of a moral sublimity, which Is sometimes even incon- sistent with minor grace and charm. Neyertheless, the writer takes this opportunity of adding beauty to the essential characteristics of prophecy. What is Comparative Literature? Book I. What is Comparative Literature? Chapter I. Definition of Comparative Literature. L How Literature becomes Comparative. The study of literature becomes comparative when it breaks over the walls of linguistic ignor- ance, of provincial prejudice and sectional animosity, merging national into international expressions of living endeavor. Its duty is to gather, sort, grade and combine the literature of all languages, so as to discover and formulate its purport, meaning, and trend, summing up its differences, similarities and significance for the guidance of the lives of men and women who wish to live in the light of their hu- manity, rather than in that of their unavoidable pro- vincial affiliations. We are, in other words, ensuing the expressions of the higher patriotism of Ana- xagoras and many others since, which seeks and finds its true 'fatherland' or 'patrie' in 'heaven.' By this broadening change, literature essentially merges into the truest and best meaning of 'religion' or 'binding together' of all that is universally good, M What is Comparative Literature ? true, and beautiful; a late realization of Vincent of Lerins' dream of the Catholic Religion of Human- ity, 'what has been held always, everywhere, and by all.' 2. The Existence cf &, Human Problem. But if literature becomes comparative by merely raising or broadening our view-point, nevertheless? on entering the international sphere, we meet a very real difficulty — the absence of normative standards corresponding to those national norms so easily de- rived from racial characteristics, geography, and his- tory. Psychology, both individual and social, has not yet been established on a historical, comparative basis, so that we arrive at one genuine problem, a normative description of a human being; and further to a second. What is his purpose? 3. The Riddle of the Sphinx. The existence, indeed, of such problems has been recognized in all ages. Seated by the city-gate, the Theban Sphinx asked her riddle of every wayfarer, and made way with all who resolved it not. Serious must this riddle have been, to have entailed death ! This, however, cannot mean anything else than that none survived failure to resolve it; in other words, it was the problem how to lead a successful life. All that we know of it supports this conclusion ; the successive ages of man cannot have referred to any- What is Comparative LiteratIjre? iii thing else than to the individuality of that which assumes those Protean shapes. Do we need Bunyan and Longfellow to assure us that this fairy-tale of ancient times has urgency to- day ? Though seven-gated beleaguered Thebes has decayed to dust, yet still are the gates of the various senses of the human soul beleaguered; still at its en- trance is asked of each wayfarer what may be his individual solution of the riddle of human destiny. Those who resolve it attain health, wealth and hap- piness, while those who fail decline into failure, pov- erty, sickness and suicide. This problem, however, is not merely academic or perennial; it bears for our generation peculiar ur- gencies of threefold nature — international, Amer- ican, and modern. 4. International Urgency ({f the Problem. Although suicide is no longer publicly advised, as it was by the sages of imperial Rome, neverthe- less its ever-increasing rate in every country of the globe is a matter of common knowledge. Nor are the wayfarers who thus acknowledge they have failed to resolve the riddle of their destiny any longer confined to adults, especially those who live under trying circumstances, such as painful or incurable diseases, slavery, confinement, misery, or continent- al army systems; even children of school age have re- \v What is Comparative Literature ? cently in Germany and elsewhere in increasing num- bers by suicide signified their premature defeat. 5. American Urgency cf the Problem. But this is not all; for if Europe be willing or able to manage without more than local or partial answers to the riddle of the ages, we in America are in still direr need of immediate intelligent, coher- ent answer; for we are haunted not only by the spectre of increasing suicide, but by the demon of growing insanity. To us, therefore, the solution of the riddle is not a luxury like wine, but a staple like bread or salt. As the American herd of buffalo trav- elled and roamed over continents in search of salt, so must we roam and travel over the whole world's interpretations of human destiny to soothe and sweeten our newer, stranger, and more terrifying soul-sickness, which manifests among us as those our social conditions that admittedly are unpreced- ented, unimagined, unsounded. Besides, a study as comparative as this should be peculiarly illuminating to us Americans, whose na- tion is composed of elements from every part of Europe. Readily should we understand the varying moods of the several nations and races; in consider- ation so comparative should we gather together its answers into some strain completer than that to which humanity has ever listened; an answer more What is Comparative Literature? v varied, more searching, more universal than that to which any one nation could either give birth, or which it could even favorably receive. 6. Modern Urgency cf the Problem. For notice, the ancient answers will no longer sat- isfy. Ready-made, machine-turned, phonographical- ly recorded answers will not serve. Humanity, e\^er young, listens only to the latest prophecy as its gos- pel. Job, Homer, Aeschylos, Plato, Kschemisvara, these we read with admiration, and edit with rever- ence; but they are haunted by the ages in and for which they wrote, and to whom they were then the voice of the ever self-revealing divinity. So Saint Augustine, Dante Alighieri, Calderon and Goethe uttered what were oracles to their day. Even Bun- yan, Spenser, Byron, Shelley, Longfellow, Hugo, Ibsen are already retreating along the tranquil echo- ing corridors of yesterday. To-day's problems, to- day's difficulties must, if at all, be set at rest by to- day's interpretations and oracles. Though perhaps less known, to-day's bards and prophets are closer kin to us; only from them can we hope for intellig- ent sympathy and practical guidance. vi What is Comparative Literature? Chapter II. Ihe International Hum&n Problem. 1. General Common Elements. In our efforts, therefore, to discover and partake of the sacramental food of an international, cos- mopolitan solution of the riddle of the destiny of human nature, we shall first have to consider local solutions of the riddle. But these will find their explanations only in a study of the Sphinx itself, in its traits common to all its national varieties; and the Sphinx itself consists of the universal elements of life whose pressure demands a way out, an interpretation, a salvation. Shall we then, for the building-stones out of which any palace of destiny must inevitably be built hark back to the cobwebs of the schoolmen, or the rhodomontades of metaphysicians? Hardly, without putting back the clock of human progress. We must grasp around us in the warm realities of life, assembling the most obtrusive facts of exper- ience, without much attempt at completeness — which perhaps may render our results only more appealing and captivating. Such then are emotions, love, discipline, self-control, conscience and sub- limity. What is Comparative Literature? vii 2. More Detailed Analysis qf Life. The above general terms fairly express the birth- right of our human nature; but a more detailed account will be of greater service. So we enumerate. 1. The Endless Chain of life for work, and work to support life. 2. The Imperious Unexpected, that makes or mars our careers. 3. The Focal Diabolism of Misfortune, when our watches stop at the wrong moment; when it never rains but it pours; when the book we are looking for is the last to be reached, whether top or bottom; when carrying an umbrella is insurance against rain. 4. Periodic Opportunism, when for weeks we are idle, or our efforts are in vain, while 'to him that hath shall be given,' and all at the same time; which from everywhere obtrudes on us a thing, but only after our attention has once been called to it. 5. The Hippodromic Hypocrisy of Professional- ism, which condemns us to a double life in spite of our holiest efforts at sincerity. 6. The Incurable Spectres of cancer, and many a moral disease, such as drink and gambling. 7. The Sardonic Humor which sends good for- tune, but only at the wrong time; which grants all our prayers, but only too late to use or enjoy their objects; which suggests to us bright replies when it is too late to make them; which mars our most viii What is Comparative Literature? sacred emotions with ludicrous memories. 8. The Patriotism of Graft, which demonstrates that reformers fail in ninety cases out of a hundred. 9. The Pharmacopeia of Bluff, that produces pragmatic vindication, without regard to principle or learning. 10. The Orthodox Stupidity, that slays its thou- sands, where malicious persecution disturbs only its scores. 11. The Critical Coincidences, which If taken at ebb of tide lead on to success, and which on the reverse side of the tapestry demonstrate an over- ruling providence. 12. The Predestinating Memories which remind us of unseen Presences around us; which give us warning visions in a symbolism we cannot under- stand till after the event; or which warn us unex- pectedly in trifling matters, but which when sought in matters of moment are as silent as the grave. 13. The Loyalty of Friendship, which keeps us sane and wise. 14. The Trustful Voice of Conscience, that preaches a Judgment and a Vindication. Such then are the blocks out of which any Palace of Destiny must be built; and only as they are properly employed, Is any Temple able to weather the rain of emotions, the wind of opposition, and the flood of a younger generation's iconoclastic renovation. What is Comparative Literature? ix 3. Significance of these Elements. Such then are genuine universal elements of life, the ordering of whose expression forms generaliza- tions of comparative literature. But, like any other science this one would not be complete without con- clusions, that is, a puzzling out of its general sig- nificance, an orientation resulting from its currents, an interpretation, a reading of its general purport, its burden, or spiritual message of literature. For this residual standard of values have been proposed or employed many terms, such as liter- ature, teaching, poetry, world-dramatist, seer, prophet. From among these terms It were well to choose the most widely applicable, and which has been least misused. As to wide applcablllty. It would be preferable if the word had many connected terms, such as poet, poetic, poetry; or prophet, prophetic, prophecy; besides, the latter only has the verb, to prophesy. In this respect the other terms are defi- cient: litterateur is a foreign term, while man of letters or literary man are awkward and inexpres- sive. Teacher has to seek elsewhere its adjective educative. Seer stands entirely alone; world-dram- atist is besides awkward. Prophecy Is therefore most available and convenient. It is also the least misused at the present day, its unfortunate connotation of prediction being rare In X What is Comparative Literature? common language, while among religious people its predictiveness has practically limited itself to what is necessarily involved in truth-telling. In contrast with this consider the secularized use of literature for science, fiction and even advertisements; poetry is used currently to denote rhyming, versifying, or idle trivialities; teaching is primarily professional; the word seer is sometimes used equivocally. In choosing prophecy, therefore, as the most con- venient and available, and least misused term to denote the spiritual message of comparative litera- ture, we are fortunate in finding a term which is already largely in use for this purpose; for it is not unusual to hear of poet-prophets, or prophets of the new age. It only remains now to define this term more closely. What is Comparative Literature? xi Chapter III. De&nition gf Prophecy. 1. Prophecy iy Not Prediction. Granted that Prediction be accurate — what then? Has it any abiding value? No. Has it necessarily any moral value? No; many accurate predictions have been uttered by persons not overwhelmingly saintly, and have foretold insignificant events; and indeed, many predictions which in former ages would have been convincing of supernatural inter- vention have in these latter days received adequate explanation on the grounds of recently formulated Natural Law, or grammatical license (the Hebrew language possessing but a single Indefinite Tense to represent both Past and Future;) and some of the most inspired prophets, when they have strayed in- to the field of Prediction have made notable failures. No doubt. Inspired Prevision formed part of the Prophetic Office; yet only a minor, a not indispens- able portion; for some of the utterances most uni- versally recognised as bearing the stamp of Inspired Prophecy refer not to the Future, but to the Ever- present. So the Hebrew youths learnt in the Schools of the Prophets to rebuke even princes for their sins, to predicate the Fatherhood of God, and the Brotherhood of the Messiah Christ. xii What IS Comparative Literature? 2. Prophecy iw not Dogma. Prophecy is the free utterance of the divine Affla- tus, which never expresses itself the same way twice. Imagine therefore how far from Prophecy is Dogma whose whole effort is so analytically to formulate every chance utterance for profession by the orthodox The Dogmatist is a man of naturalingenuity, but of education limited either by misfortune or princi- ple — for many Roman ecclesiastics are erudite, but use their mental faculties only in defending the faith but never in considering it on its merits. Voluntary or not, the Dogmatist's ignorance con- vinces him that persons who believe otherwise must be of evil life; that the fate of the Universe depends on the prevalence of his behef. So Torquemada felt he was doing his victims a favor in saving their souls even in spite of themselves. Hence, no action is too uncharitable, no Jesuitism is too criminal, no lie is too black, no bargain too dishonorable to establish the Faith, as he understands it. The end, unexam- ined, sanctifies the means. He does not reflect that if the only means to an end is itself unholy, the end is probably a mistaken one. The Dogmatist is not an individualist; for him the individual and his con- science exist only as tools for the advancement of doctrine, church and race. The thinker is an anar- chist! Even hymns of praise become creeds, as hap- pened to the 'Athanasian Creed.' The Dogmatist wrote the Levitlcal Law, and hid it where King Jo siah should find it, and enslave the people thereby" What is Comparative Literature? xiii 3. Prophecy i^ not Exegesis or Theology. The Prophet leaves Exegesis to the Professional Disciple, who both lacks, and refuses to admit the Light within himself; for he treasures the prophetic Word, even when he publicly disagrees with it, as Christians do with the non-resistance commands of the Sermon on the Mount. If any one points out this prima-facie contradiction, he explains away the Word, so as to make it mean the jexact contrary of its natural dictionary sense, and then claims for the Word the honor of having inspired the excellences of that 'civilization.' The Prophet deals in his own living words, in their plain, immediate, convincing sense. Nor is the Prophet a Theologian. The Dogmat- ist accepts his principles, their expression, and its summary ready-made; the Exegete also accepts rea- dy-made principles and formulations, but scrutiniz- es their expression in the documents, which is a be- ginning, however humble, of use of the mind. The Theologian goes one step further in intellection and begins to be dimly conscious of the need of being 'logical,' and on his ready-made Bible and principles constructs his house of cards, which however falls at the next revelation. The Prophet knows nothing of logic or consistency; his only business is to see the Truth, and utter it; let others interpret it, or make logical deductions from it. xiv What is Comparative Litearture? 4. Prophecy ij- Not Ecclesi&sticism. The Prophet is not an Ecclesiastic, parochial or hierarchical. Men of this temperament have at heart the well-being of some organization, parish, sacer- dotal sodality, or historic church, weighted down with constitutions, by-laws, rules, charters, decrees, pastoral letters, pronunciamentos, bulls or canons. It is the well-being of the established regime that the ecclesiastic seeks; if signing the 39 Articles is part of the formality of college graduation, even an enlightened Dean Stanley will sign them. In fact, Roman Catholicism and Buddhism have, apparent- ly independently, succeeded in evolving ritual of strikingly detailed similarity. On the contrary, the Prophet cares little or nothing for the body politic, his business being with the conscience of individuals as they feel hypocrisy and sincerity. Were it not for the deliberate obscuring of the issue by the Church there would have hardly been excuse for this paragraph, so luridly does History and Bible paint the eternal warfare between Prophet and Priest. Have we not, on one hand, Gautama starting a life-long protest against Brahmanism, and on the other, Jesus ci-ucified by the Pharisees, mad- dened as they were by his scathing arraignment of them as hypocrites? Had not Isaiah and Jeremiah plainly brought up the controversy, and thundere4 against th? blood of bulls and goats ? What is Comparative Literature? xv 5. Prophecy i./* not Sermonizing. The Prophet is not a Predicator or Lecturer. It is not his part to make set orations, to deliver pre- pared prelections, either on topics of theoretical in- terest, or scientific subjects. He need not, nor should he conduct theoretical discussions of ethical prob- lems. There is no necessity that his work be dis- tinctively paraenetic. Fatal for him is it to catch the twang and drone of the professional sermonizer.AU these varied forms of activity presuppose given mat- erials which are in some way to be worked over and turned out to order, by the yard, or hour. The pro- phet's business is to create new material, to reveal new facts in his capacity as Seer; any Dryasdust can combine and re-combine them. This requirement made of the Prophet is indeed recognized universally. Even literary critics require of the Poet that he shall not sermonize. Nay, if a choice be compulsory. Art will prefer debonair vice to droning virtue. This, of course, is both a mistake and misfortune. But it emphasizes that Art, let alone Prophecy, must diffuse the fragrance of spon- taneity, inspiration, vividness and grace — in short, diffuse that charm which Nature's God reveals through her in the song of the bird, and the ocean's roar. There must be about it something elemental, cosmJcal, touching, ^Harming, coinmanding. xvi What is Comparative Literature? 6. Prophecy ij" Not Versifying', Nor is the Prophet a professional versifier, "the Idle dreamer of an idle day," a Troubadour. Trans- lating, adapting, versifying tales, and droning out epics, or laboriously inditing 'Night Thoughts,' his soul, burning for the salvation of humanity, revolts at. 'Tours de force' in metre, in rhyme, in vocab- ulary are an abomination to him. He has no time to transcribe pages from the dictionary, or write poems whose first and last lines alone can be understood. As unconscious of self as the Delphian Sybil may he be, while uttering the sough of the moving wat- ers of his soul, reckless of form, by divine compuls- ion from within. His words scarify the memory, and leave a bleeding cicatrix on the conscience. This is true even of mere poets; of some we remember nothing but a pleasant general impression. But there are creators, veritable messengers from Heaven, whose words Mrs Browning so well describes: How sure it is that if we say a true word Instantly we feel 'tis God's, not ours. And pass it on as bread at sacrament. Indeed, the great prophets, like Jesus, Gautama, Zoroaster, Sokrates, took not the time to write down their words, nor advertised a copyrighted edition of their works, with half-tone frontispiece portrait ! What is Comparative Literature? xvii 7. Prophecy i^ Sincerity, The first essential of Prophecy is Sincerity. So all- important is it in the popular estimate of Prophecy that even if a Prophet be sincere, yet his message is almost useless if his sincerity be doubted — witness Kassandra, Sokrates, Isaiah. External rejection is but a superficial considera- tion. Sincerity is, psychologically, the very condition of prophetic utterance. For Sincerity does not mean mere mathematical correctness. For instance, when we consider the case of men, women and children who permitted themselves to be tortured and mart- yred for the truth of statements now universally conceded to be mistakes, we realize that what was really admirable in them was their moral heroism, and not their judgment in accepting such an issue. Sincerity itself therefore consists in the habit of living a "single" life — the outer life at any and all times conforming to the inmost, until the best self gradually ceases to be the self of emergencies, and becomes the habitual, normal self; all utterances are the product of one's best light, on which he risks his destiny. JMorally, it matters little if a fact relat- ed be true, so long as a man believes it wholly, like Luther before the Diet of Worms, "I cannot other wise, so help me God." xviii What is Comparative Literature? Sincerity therefore, means self-consecration; the sacrifice of every external thing, sooner or later, to the one central truth, the expression of the highest self. Ibsen has drawn the whole tragedy of sincerity in his great drama 'Brand,' although he has erred in this, that he has forgotten the Divine Supporter of Sincerity. Truly, without God, the result of utter Sincerity would indeed be freezing to death on the Alps. But the life-history of many prophets, such as Isaiah, shows their fate to be a living death, a long period of activity as prophet, despised and rejected of men one day, and idolized the next, only to be rejected once more. This is a sacrifice by far greater than immediate death. Mrs Browning said that the Poet was the only truth-teller left. True, in a certain sense; for the poet writes for his own ideal, makes his own constituen- cy, and lives free, in the hand of God; often, nay, most often, as poor as the holiest Prophet; but he is dreaming his own dream, instead of God's. Nev- ertheless, there is still a possibility of work inside the social body for the sincere and self-denying pro- phet; not indeed in entering a body that does not exact any formal Entrance Creed, for there is a so- cial unwritten law, or the society would fall apart. But he can make his own congregation, or travel in apostolic fashion from city to city. What is Comparative Literature? xix 8. Prophecy i./* Scholarship. Sincerity alone is no proof of Truth. The most contradictory opinions are advanced by men equally sincere, who have been willing to die for them; nay, the more unreasonable a religious sect has been, the more martyrs can it point to. Is there no final truth then? Is all opinion, when all is said and done? No: for Scholarship possesses nowadays a quite res- pectable body of facts; and nowadays it is a man's duty, before he tries to be sincere, to see to it he has something tangible about which to be sincere. He should know more than those he proposes to lead out of the ditch, or he may lead the more enlight- ened back into his own error. Scholarship is the fly- wheel of Sincerity, without which Sincerity becomes Fanaticism — and none is so sure and sincere about his thesis as the Fanatic, and with as little reason. Let us say more; at least nowadays. Scholarship is no longer a privilege, but a duty; and the Prophet who ignores it is either a Fanatic or a Hypocrite. What is the use of a rudder without compass, chart and stars ? True, he might avoid the visible rocks that he meets by day; but how about the invisible shoals? Would he know his position on the open sea? Or could he ever hope to reach any definite destination? Strange, that most people seem willing to take such senseless risks in spiritual matters ! XX What is Comparative Literature? Now Scholarship comprises Science, Literature, and Religion. The Prophet should be acquainted with the main body of ascertained data. He should hold a degree in medicine, so as to understand all about the human body and its proper relation to the mind, soul and spirit. Then he should be famlhar with all the literature of all ages and races, — being familiar with all that has been said, he will be more Hkely to say something worth saying, to avoid re- peating ancient blunders, and to know what to say under special circumstances. But most important is Scholarship in the domain of religion, where it means first-hand religion, the opposite of hear-say, traditional stories, beliefs, arguments about God. No man should undertake to preach until he himself had had an experience of face to face acquaintance with God. While it would be neither reasonable nor practical to limit a man's prophecy to what he may have actually experienced there is no doubt whatever that there should be a solid basis of experience for the Prophet's main contentions. The churches are wrong in giving the candidates for their ministry none but an Intellectual training. Surely, before a bottle can pour forth good wine, the bottle must have been filled. Preachers who utter Messages without ever having received any from God direct are evidently fabricating them. Scholarship in Prophecy 1 First-hand Religion ! What is Comparative Literature? xxi 9, Prophecy ij" Divine Discontent. If Prophecy were no more than Sincerity and Education men like Walt Whitman who sincerely preach the gospel of Enjoyment of the Flesh, as a duty, as well as the supreme end of life, (as Robert Browning's 'Summum Bonum' in his 'Asolando') might be called prophets. But the Prophet is divine- ly discontented with the Present; his whole and sole effort is to interpret to those he meets his vision of their impending divinity; he tries to convince them that they are infinitely perfectible, that it is for them to deserve further moral opportunities; that by un- dying self-culture they must yet progress beyond their noblest ideals; that nowhere are they to be more than pilgrims; that this world is no more than a hos- telry, that the Beyond alone is worthy of being their true home. Like Goethe's Faust he realizes that he will be claimable by the Devil the very moment that he shall be sufficiently pleased with the Passing Hour to bid it remain with him, and say to it, Stay, thou art so beautiful! What else than end of progress can Satisfaction mean ? The very beginning of soul-progress must therefore be Divine Discontent. It is the artistic el- ement which defies the camera and phonograph. This is the secret of all true prophecy, to nerve men to ever more resilient strenuousness. xxii What is Comparative Literature? 10. Prophecy i^ Inspir&tion. Never defined by the Church, Inspiration need not be defined here — let us simply point to its ef- fects: the influent Divine Spirit speaking through Man; it is speaking, not "as the Scribes," but with authority, like the young Jesus at Capernaum. But why deny, and with fury, that as soon as any man cleans out the stopped pipes of his organ, the eddy- ing wind of the Spirit, imprisoned within, will through them sweep harmonies divine? Will the Father refuse to speak to any of his children? It is because of Inspiration that the Prophet can- not be trammelled by Creed or Doctrine, if he is to prophesy. Is it not an impious farce to say to God, "Dear God, inspire me; but remember that if that with which You inspire me is not orthodox, I will have none of it." What divine Inspiration needs he who conforms to a doctrine decided by a majority? Or would the cleric willing conveniently to forget his promise to profess it, be worthy of, or would he be hkely to get Inspiration? Freedom is not essen- tial to sincerity or scholarship; there are many sin- cere and learned Roman Catholics who by principle use their mind to defend, but never to consider their views; nay, discontented clerics gnaw at their hearts In secret self-contempt their life long; but how can any man remain faithful to promise of conformity to any creed either be sincere in praying for, or be successful In getting the genuine divine Inspiration? What is Comparative Literature? xxiii 11. Prophetic Art and Other Art^. But it will be asked, Are there not other Arts equally depending on Sincerity, Truth to Life, the Ideal, and Inspiration, such as Painting, Sculpture, and Music? Are any true paintings, is any symbol- ic statue, is any heart-stirring music to be had at a less price? Have not Rafael's Madonnas, the Thor- waldsen's Lion, and Beethoven's Sonatas graved themselves on the heart of Humanity with an iron pen? Quite so; they partake of the nature of the elements which constitute the Art of Prophecy; but their very special excellences limit their sphere of usefulness — paintings are few, dear, limited to one single idea; statuary is unmovable, and many frankly admit they have no ear for music, or deliberately pre- fer dance-tunes to Bach or Wagner. But speech ev- ery one has; a conscience is the destiny, if not the possession of every man; words can express every shade of thought, and yet can, in writing, be pre- served thousands of years, and in printing, dissem- inated among millions; while will ever all present and prospective improvements in painting, sculpture and music combined ever equal in moral sublimity some gifted orator in prophetic phrenzy appealing to the consciences of a surging multitude of men? Nor indeed should the auxiliary Arts be neglect- ed; they should be employed to extend Prophecy into the sphere of the Emotions and Senses. xxiv What is Comparative Literature? 12. *nie Prophecy cf the Past That Prophets have always existed, has never been questioned; but as yet no systematic attempt has been made to compare, classify and bring to a focus the teachings of all of them. It is therefore high time to compare the testimony of the world's greatest souls concerning the essential facts of the inner life, as they gush forth from lips touched with divine fire. A systematic attempt such as this was made by Herder, but it was never completed. Other partial, provincial ones are common, and indeed every soul makes a similar attempt during the course of its religious experience; but this lacks the universality of scope and system of the present at- tempt. True, each man must still follow the Voice within himself; but not until a man is familiar with all the Voices around him, from all ages and races, can he expect sanity in the mystic extasy. There is indeed no greater pitfall in the spiritual life than insanity, self-delusion and conceit. The Pro- phet who relies for guidance and instruction wholly on the Within (as he should do), has no protection from it except a broad education. How easily does ignorance take self-delusions for inspiration! How many world-famous men have done so! The mother of sanity is education; and Prophets should confine themselves to strictly moral questions until they know history, science, and half a dozen languages. What is Comparative Literature? xxv 13. Ihe Prophecy of the Future. The Prophets are not dead. Plutarch's report of the cry heard on the Illyrian Sea that Pan was dead was worse than untrue — it was a blunder. We echo the cry of the ancient prophet that the time shall yet be fulfilled when old men, young men and maid- ens shall prophesy, and the fire of the Word shall be shed on the world. This few would care to deny; and yet is it, in practice, belied. Men are continual- ly looking back, instead of forwards. Why look back to the 'good old times' even if they ever did exist? Would there not be more actual utility in looking forward to the beautiful New Babe that is to be born into the world — even if experience teaches us that our plans may not be realized in their entirety ? Such men as there are to-day, there never were, but great- er than they shall there be. Look into the strong, pure faces of our children with adoring awe, and in them read what Education shall yet make of them. Human Salvation must depend on what men shall yet be, not what they were. Nor must it rest on any past history, which may be denied, but on the his- tory we can make to-day, on which to build our present dreams, that they become the gods of to- morrow. These are the only real divinities, of which all deities were only shadows, allegories, dreams. xxvi What is Comparative Literature? 14. *Ihe Prophecy qf To-day. The Prophecy of the Past, supposed to have died after full bloom, was but the veriest bud of the glo- rious Prophecy of To-day: the Poetry of England and America. Its authority lies neither in the Proph- et's personality nor his persuasiveness, but in the prophecy's power to produce harmonics and respons- ive cadences, in the deepest and truest depths of his hearers, because he is only giving voice to the mute longings of the divinest aspirations. Vain to- day any attempt at usurping his hearer's inalienable right to prophesy for himself. For in each heart of man there is an altar before which the aspiring soul burns the incense of its fragrant devotions: but it is inscribed above. To the Unknown God. It is the Prophet's province to declare to each man the Div- inity he is ignorantly worshipping. This is the Liv- ing God, who is to be sought in the Temple of the Heart, if haply each man may feel after Him, and find Him, though he be not far from any one of them. For in Him we live and move, and have our being, seeing we are also his offspring, soul of His soul, spirit of His spirit, light in His light — gods going about in the flesh, as Athanasius expressed it. Prophetic Art is the intellectual consideration and explanation of the significance of utterances of Prophecy, as we gather it from all bibles, histories and literatures of all races of all times. BOOK II R&cial Prophetic Elements. Book II Racial Prophetic Elements. INTRODUCTION 1 Prephetie Art. — Prophetic Art is the reading of life in the light of the inner self. According as this self varies in a represent- ation of external Nature or the Divine within, the utterance vyill vary from the shallowest poetry to the most inspired prophecy. In its fullest sense, therefore, prophecy is the significance of human life in the sight of God. So far the terms prophecy and prophetic art have been used somewhat interchangeably, and it may be well to define them ac- curately. Prophetic Art is the intelleftual consideration, survey or criticism oi prophecy, which itself is the direft expression of the Divine Fire. On this account prophetic art can never hope to e- mulate the other arts in proceeding to an avowedly construftive position. Indireftly, indeed, it may lead to this; but the direft ut- terance must frankly test on Divine Inspiration. Yet the man who has folly studied historic pi-ophecy will be in a more favourable condition to be inspired in the r'ght way than a man who is ignor- ant of the ways of the Spirit. 2 Accuracy. — The first essential of prophecy is construftiveness, not destruftiveness, the bad preeminence of the intelleft, while the former is the natural expression of the Divine self vsdthin; and if men were willing to recognize this distinftion, they would the sooner realize how very much they all agree in the fundamentals. But even bad tendencies have their good sides, and the intelleft normally promotes accuracy. There can be no greater mistake than to read modern mental attitudes and conceptions into prophecies of the past. An enquiry into the significance of fafts thus modernized is a farce — it is the night in which all cats are grey: that way lies Theosophy. So accuracy demands almost cold-hearted lack of sympathy. Hence wherever this may appear in the following pages it should be excused as indispensable to accuracy. IntroduBhn to Book II 3 Sources of Inspiration. — It will be our duty to analyze the sour- ces of inspiration which have contributed, more or less, to the mo- dern stand-point. These may be divided, into two groups: prima- ry and secondary, or ethnic and historic. \The Ethnic Group. — The historic group of sources of inspirations refers for the most part to prophecies which have been uttered with- in periods well within the limits of historicity, by individuals whose lives and attainments can be studied in detail. It is possible in most instances to define their formative influences, and to estimate the personal equation in their prophecy, which is the significance of their contribution to the prophecy of the world. The Ethnic Group, on the contrary, may be said to r e- fer to the sources of inspiration which have been handed down from prehistoric times, in the best sense of this word. As it enter- ed the full light of history each nation possessed certain treasured heirlooms in the shape of legends or epics which have moulded its history and literature. These therefore should be considered the most vital sources of inspiration, and still remain the fountain-head of all literature. For the sake of convenience, these may be group- ed as follows: (i) The Hindu, Persian, and Muhammadan Sour- ces; (2) the Chinese and Japanese Sources; (3) the Egyptian, Assyrio-Babylonian, and Zarashustrian Sources. (4) The Homeric Sources. (5) The surviving Aboriginal Sources. (6) The North- ern Sources. Our task now is to study the results, the significance, import and distinftive moral teaching, nay, the spiritual gist of th*" intelleftual life of these peoples. 5 The Hindu, Persian, and Muhammadan Sources. The Hin- dus have taught the world Generosity, Readiness to Forgive, Mo- ral Desert, Spiritual Culture, Deification, Compassion, Fidelity. The Persians, Veracity and Conjugal Faithfulness. The Arabians may lay claim to the glory of having insisted on Islam, that is, 'Resignation' to the Will of God. 6 The Mongolian Sources. — The Chinese are a much abused and misunderstood people, which is perhaps somewhat due to the IntroduSlion to Book II serious difficulties in reading and writing their language. They have however always stood for the sublimest principles. Moderation, Duty and Righteousness, Charafter, Filiality (human and divine), are traits and conceptions distinftively Chinese, just as the Japanese represent Imitativeness and Tender Friendship. 7 The Semitic Sources. — The so-called Semitic group of races have succeeded in dominating the world — not physically indeed, but in civilization and moral atmosphere. The Egyptians (only half-Semites :'.jdeed) clung to a Day of Judgment, to a Manifesta- tion to Light, with all its implied consequences. The Assyrio-Ba- bylonians represent Intelleftual Culture and Divine Communion, just as the Zarashustrians teach Purity, the Angelic Hierarchy, and the idea of God as Fire. 8. The Homeric Sources. — The Homeric Sources are valuable to modern life mainly for the conceptions of Heroic Magnanimity, and for the moral standard of Social Success, as also for Objeftiv- ity in an aesthetic sense. 9. The Surviving Aboriginal Sources. — It is almost impossible ■ to interpret in a few words the many conftifting tendencies which the Aboriginal Sources illustrate. Let us distinguish the Love of Flowers as a peculiarly Nahuatl trait, while the Quiche, Malagasy and Lettish Sources are charafterised by Mildness. 10.-' The Northern Sources. — The Icelandic literature ftirnishes us the greater portion of striftly Northern ideals. Here is Manli- ness unmistakable, and the most pronounced Bardism, or Love of Poetry. ELEMENTS OF PROPHECY Chapter I The Hindu, Per^i&.n £> Arak,bi&.n Source./* It is not too much to say that of all early civili- zations there is none which has had more influence on mankind, and that has left sublimer monuments than the Hindu world. We owe to it Sanskrit, that language so marvellous — in beauty, in wealth of ex- pressions, and in ingeniousness of strudture — that it is a liberal education to study it, even were it not the parent language, in some senses. We owe to it th". immortal hymns of the Vedas, priceless relics of the almost forgotten childhood of humanity. We owe to it Buddhism, whose dod:rine of Compassion for cen- turies softened the hearts of millions, which was the first religion (and for the matter of that the first pu- blic influence) that rescued woman from hopeless slavery, whose doftrine (and practice! ) of religious tolerance stands in significant contrast to the oceans of Christian blood shed in even internecine persecu- tion. We owe to it such splendid literature as the Hindu dramatic epoch produced, in the more than Shaksperian Cudraka's 'Mricchikatika', and the less powerful works of Kalidasa (the author of Sakunta- la), Kschemisvara and Bhavabhuti. We owe to it those two great epics, the Mahabharata and the Ra- mayana, with which Edwin Arnold has entranced the ELEMENTS OF PROPHECY world. Other civilizations there have been, but ex- cept the Babylonian and Homeric epics, there is no- thing like it — not even the pyramids, or Karnak, or Luxor. Almost a part of the Hindu world is the Persian with its noble epic, the Shah Nahmeh, and its scin- tillating mediaeval lyrical epoch, the stars of whose constellation are Enweri, Ferid-ed-din Attar, Sadi, Jellud-a-din, Hafiz, Jami, Omar Khayyam — ^words to conjure with, an immortal band. We cannot omit the Muhammadan sources of prophetic inspiration, so strongly did that religion impress itself on the East. And though, with the exception of the Arabian Lyric, and the beautifvil 'Epic of Antar', it possesses only one note that, in the Q^uran, appeals to us stronlgy, nevertheless that one note, (Resignation to the Will of God), is of the divinest character, and revealed its divinity by the beauty of its fragrant bloom, Persian Sufism. HINDU GENEROSITY I. The Hindus: Genero./'ity. One of the most salient ideals of life among the Hindus is Generosity. In itself generosity is not distindively spiritual. The debauchee will scatter in an hour the accumulation of years; and much chari- ty is social pride and moral weakness. In one sense, in that they are diredted by an at least intelleftual consideration, calculating thrift is higher in the scale of evolution than spendthrift prodigality. But there is more than this. Broad culture leads to a genuine generosity; a generosity that is not weakness, but strength of mind and heart. This is the great Hin- du virtue. This is shown, first, in the lavish presents given to the Brahmins. In the Ramayana and Mahabha- rata it is not an unusual thing to hear of kings who would donate to the Brahmins 'the whole earth.' For instance, in the beautiful Haritshandra legend the latter presents to the ascetic Viswamitra 'the whole earth' and loo.ooo pieces of gold. Of course this account savours of wild exaggeration: but it il- lustrates well the principle that nothing is too good for spiritual welfare, for the support of those who lead spiritual lives, or may assist others to do so. Then every sacrifice and social funftion, such as a marriage or funeral. Is the occasion of gifts to the Brahmins. True, this liberality led to a low morality on the part of the Brahmins, made fools and glut- tons of some of them, as Maitreya in the sublime 8 HINDU GENEROSITY Mricchikatika, Gautama in Malavika and Agnimitra and Manavaka in Urvasi. Yet that was the fault of the Brahmins themselves, not of the princely gene- rosity of those who thereby acknowledged the value they placed on spiritual advice and assistance. In the second place it was shown in the noble friendships of hero for hero. Nothing is too good to be given away to the friend. To be king meant to be a giver, a source of joy to others. And surely no quality is more kingly: recognized as such in the republican Graeco-Roman worlds, and in Anglo-Sa- xon derivation. Thus it is usual to speak of 'prince- ly' generosity even in modern times, long after the word 'prince' has ceased to be anything but a piece of millinery. In the third place, it took a form so extreme as to be almost unrecognizable to modern conceptions. From several dramas it would have seemed to be the common opinion to be laudable in a first wife to be so generous to her husband as not only to forgive him for desiring an additional wife, but even to seek her out for him on suspicion of such a desire on his part. So Ausinari leads Urvasi to Pururava; so Dha- rini and Irvati, after the first anger, take trouble to bring Malavika to their husband Agnimitra. (A cu- rious parallel to this was Cato's sending his wife to his visiting friend as a mark of gracious hospitality.) Surely generosity could not go further. HINDU PLACABILITY 2. The Hindus: Re&.dine^^ to Forgive. Generosity is closely allied to readiness to forgi- ve. Yet just as these are spurious forms of genero- sity, so are there spurious forms of readiness to for- give. The animal nature is likely, after a short out- burst of rage, to be calmed. Better than this form of forgiveness is the steady hate of a mind. But greater still is that soul which can forgive freely, with full consciousness of all circumstances; forgi- ving not out of weakness or forgetfulness. This demands a high character, one similar to that which is in the Ramayana ascribed to Rama; brave, truthful, humble-minded, respectflil, and ge- nerous to Bramans and having his passions under complete control. It is not surprising that such a character was able to forgive his step-mother for for- cing Dasaratha to banish him to the wilderness, and and raising to the throne his foster-brother instead of himself. With an exalted sense of filial duty 'the exiles also bid a respectful andafFectionate farewell to Kaikeyi, the cruel author of their banishment, Rama remarking that it was not her own heart, but destiny alone that had made her press for the pre- vention of his installation.' Rama again shows rea- diness to forgive. Having finally overcome the Rak- shasa Ravana, he forgives him, and devotes to him a funeral suitable to his former rank and power; this compares favourably with the behaviour of Achilles with noble Hektor's body; this is morally sublime. lO HINDU MORAL DESERT 3 The Hindus: Mor&l Desert. Moral desert can be earned through good works The doctrine of Karma only works out in detail this principle, which, after all, is the foundation of all morality. Of course it is a matter of opinion how this moral desert can be attained. While Boud- dha restricted it somewhat to the actions of conven- tional morality, Brahmanic schools had generally in- preted it as ascetic practices. It is easy, of course, to rail at asceticism, since ascetics are not likely to have much power or talent in defending themselves. But a fair-minded man should not dare to discredit the value of asceticism till he have tried it himself. And Gautama could well declare asceticism useless after he himself had reaped its fruits: control of his bo- dy. This once gained, it can be preserved by medi- tation: but for a short period, till the body be sub- dued, asceticism is of infinite value. Nevertheless the Brahmanists mistook the means for the ends, to judge by the lives of men who pradice nothing but self-torture. Yet in the great Hindu writings asceti- cism is always directed to some well-defined purpose even if it be generally more than self-control. But here we have nothing to do with asceticism in itself.^ We are interested in it only so far as it il- lustrates methods of securing moral desert. The philosophy of it is this: Man has a certain capital of opportunities, (physical and mental energy) which he can spend as he pleases, in either physical welfarr or spiritual growth. Wise is the man who brings th( HINDU MORAL DESERT II Gods into his debt, who foregoes the licit pleasures \n his grasp,' and is content to renounce; but he gar- ners knowledge. He practices stoicism only to di- rect his life-currents on a plane above physical acci- dent or employment. So a body of water can be led far at the same height with hardly any loss of kin- etic energy, or can be permitted immediately to rush down to the plain, and be lost. The ascetic is the wise man who stores his vitality by transmuting it into a form (conscious existence) which may survive physical death, by deliberate self-discipline. So Hindu epics tell that even demons could lay up moral desert, and attain powers if they only denied themselves. In the Ramayana the Rakshasa (demon) Ravana by long and painful austerities earned from the Creator Brahma bodily immunity from God or demon. Again, the legend of the king Viswamitra- Kausika tells that on his being entertained by an an- chorite, possessor of a marvelously desirable cow Sabala, he found no other way to secure her than by becoming worthy of her, that is, by acquiring the requisite spiritual power. So he practised asceticism for many thousand years, for the sake of Sabala, yet in their course his desires were purified, and he sought higher things. First, he earned admission to the Brahmin caste; then the Magic Powers, and ul- timately, after assisting the young Mahabharata he- roes to destroy the demons who afflifted the ancho- rites, equality with Indra,t he God of the Sky .Thus are all who strive for spiritual prizes chastened. 12 MORAL CULTURE The Hindus-: Spirituek.1 Culture. The difference between spiritual and moral cultu- re may be this, that the latter seeks only to form a character, a soul that will respond in certain ways in certain moral relations. The former confessedly seeks the attainment of the gifts of the spirit, of perfec- tion, of Divine Union. With some ascetics, the ob- ject is the power over magic. With others, it is con- scious union with the Divine. Such an ascetic, for in- stance, was Viswamitra-Kausika, who beginning the the spiritual culture for the sake of the possession of a divine cow, proceeded ever to higher heights, un- til he became as one of the Deities. In the Sanskrit literature there appear to be two obstacles in the path of spiritual culture: anger, and lust. So important were these temptations that the deities created two kinds of spirits or beings whose duty it was to tempt the ascetics in respect to these two failings. The Apsaras appeared as beautiful wo- men, and tempted to lust: of such a marriage was Sakuntala the offspring. Many are the instances of such temptations. Viswamitra is overcome by one Apsara for a period; again Rama passes by the lake, whence proceed sweet sounds, within which a noted ascetic had for thousands of years forgotten his du- ties in soft dalliance with an Apsara. The duty of the Ghandarvas, on the contrary, was to tempt the ascetics to anger. From the account given of the her- mits they seem to have been fearfully irascible, and MORAL CULTURE I3 their curse was so terrible that It could affect even the Gods. Through anger Viswamitra repeatedly lost the results of his sacrifices, as, for instance, particu- larly when disturbed by Haritschandra, who, in well- meaning pity, ran to the rescue of the complaining Magic Powers which Viswamitra was on the point of subduing to his will. So the merits of the asce- ticism of ten thousand years was lost. But if the hermit could withstand both these temptations, he would be able to attain any cove- ted gift of the spirit. Thus Valmiki is reported to have received the matter of the Ramayana by yoga- practice. It was a true spiritual culture. 14 DEIFICATION The Hindu./*: Deifiic&.tion. The end of the spiritual culture of the hermit was nothing less than deification. So, for instance, Ha- ritschandra was finally admitted to Indra's Heaven as an equal to Indra himself. So Yudisthira is repor- ted to have entered heaven on Mount Meru while still alive, alone, having left behind his wife and bro- thers. But this manner of physical assumption is rare. The hermits while remaining in their natural body were able to attain so much that they became formi- dable to the Gods, who, therefore,- made use of the of the Apsaras and Gandharvas to keep the hermits from attaining divinity. The hermits themselves at times became rebel- lious against the Gods. So Viswamitra, the 'bull a- mong penitents' the 'tiger among men' first prayed to Indra that King Trisanku's request to be admit- ted to Indra's heaven while alive be granted. But when no attention was paid to his prayer he announ- ced to Trisanku his purpose of creating a new set of Gods. The old Gods, said he, were of no use. They never heard prayer, and only became active when they interfered with a man's desires. So Vis- wamitra began by his own merits of asceticism of ten thousand years to raise Trisanku into heaven. And verily Trisanku began to be lifted upwards. But e- very time that he rose Indra pushed him down a- gain until Viswamltra-Kausika was lashed iuto fury. DEIFICATION 15 Then Indra came to Kausika and spoke to him fa- miliarly, assuring him that the Gods had a high re- gard for him, and hoped one day to count him a- mong their number, but that in the meanwhile it was impossible that Trisanku should be admitted. But Kausika, who had given his word to Trisanku, did not permit him to come down from where he was in mid-heaven, and finally, as neither Indra nor Kau- sika would yield, Trisanku remained in the sky a constellation until this day. The Gods themselves had undergone penance, Siva the world-destroyer, Vishnu, and even Brahma. They are then but the elder brothers of the yet im- perfed: human souls, to whom no perfedtion is im- possible; so potentially human nature is divine. l6 COMPASSION The Hindus: Comp&,y\^ion It is to the Hindus that the World owes the no- tion of Compassion, thousands of years before it was mentioned again elsewhere. It was the 'motif of many Brahmanic legends about the Gods, that they incarnated themselves for some specific purpose, such as the destruction of some evil or demon. So Vishnu in his fourth incarn- ation appeared as a man-lion for the purpose of de- livering the three worlds of heaven, earth and hell from the power of the demon Hiranyakasipu. And deities performed these incarnations in spite of the fa£t that an incarnation was considered one of the most grievous possible misfortunes: for instance, the Sakuntala drama ends with the prayer, 'may 1 never have to be born again;' and in Kschemisvara's Ha- ritschandra drama that is one of the things by the willingness to do which the latter attains divinity. This notion of a God's incarnating for a special purpose is so common in Hindu literature that we cannot pretend to do more than mention the one great classical instance — the Ramayana. Brahma, who has granted the Rakshasa Ravana immunity from god or devil, is disposed to grant the prayers of the human beings whom Ravana oppresses, but can think of no remedy other than to ask Vishnu to incarnate in four parts as the four sons of Dasaratha and thus 'in human form to rid the world' of him. COMPASSION So Vishnu appeared to Dasaratha in the flame of the sacrifice and gave him a liquor of which he was to make his qvT-rens partake. But Dasaratha gave this Hquor to his queens in unequal quantities, so that one of his sons, Rama, was more divine than the others, Lakshmana, Bharata and Satrughna; and fin- ally Rama and Lakshmana succeeded in destroying Ravana. Such incarnations are praftically the incarn- ations of Saviours; to be a Saviour is then the ideal of the Hindus. This ideal took objective form in the person of Gautama Siddhartha, whose Buddhahood fell within dimly historic times. At any rate there is no doubt but that he claimed to be such a Saviour, and en- couraged his disciples to become such after him. It was particularly noticeable that it was out of com- passion that he became a Buddha. Purposely im- mured within a palace of delights, one single sight of suffering and death made him for the world's sake flee into the desert to discover an efFeftive remedy. Besides, his compassion broke down the inhuman caste-distindtion. He took special pains to be gentle and kind to women of the lowest caste, and his com- passionate treatment of a courtesan has survived in that account which the Revisers cut out from the Fourth Gospel in A.D. 1881. Out of compassion for women generally he offered them within his or- der the opportunity for education and spiritual de- relojDznent whereas before his day the very fadl of /8 COMPASSION remaining unmarried classed a woman as a courtesan even if an authoress, so that all well-meaning were praftically forced to undertake the domesticity which in those days was a galling form of slavery. His do(5trines were social blessings to the half of human- ity that lived in Asia; while in point of kindness to animals he could improve European standards. But the principle of compassion appeared in the Hindu world in another form. The highest ideal is not to be saved but to refuse to be saved until all others are saved also. Thus In the Tschandakaucika Haritschandra desires to give all his merits to his subjedts, so that they also may immediately be car- ried to the same Heaven to which Dharma was car- rying him. But by trying to give away his merits he had doubled them. Again, in the last Parva of the Mahabharata (see Edwin Arnold's translation) the five Pandus seek Mt Meru, to be translated. All fall by the way except Yuddhisthira, who, on being ad- mitted to the sky refuses to enter unless his beloved ones be there with him. He goes to seek them in Purgatory, and since his presence lightens the afflic- tion of many sufferers, he remains there. To make him return to Heaven, the Gods go down and fetch him and his dear ones; but even when on the thresh- old of Heaven he refuses to enter unless his faithful dog is admitted also. Only when this is granted will he condescend to enter and enjoy, not alone, the Vision of the Gods. FIDELITY 19 The Hindus: Fidelity. Among the Hindus Fidelity was especially prom- inent in the matter of oaths, promises and declara- tions. Such fidelity is the theme of the noble Tschan- dakaucika, where Viswamitra forces Haritschandra to fulfil his promise, not indeed for the sake of the profit to himself, but in order that Haritschandra shall not injure his soul by failing to comply with his promise. And later, when in compliance with it he had sold himself into slavery, he refused to accept a personal present from the disguised god of Justice Dharma; nay, he even refused to bury his own child out of honesty and faithfulness towards his master. This fidelity is also the theme of the story of the Ramayana. In youth the king Dasaratha had prom- ised his wife Kaikeyi that he would fulfil any two of her wishes; in view of which promise she insisted that her own son Bharata should succeed to the crown, and that the rightful heir Rama should be banished to the forests. On Dasaratha's death, how- ever, Bharata refuses to accept the crown under such circumstances, and seeks the hermit Rama to offer it to him. In vain; Rama will have none of it — he will neither break his own resolution to retire to the religious life, nor will he be disloyal to the behest of his father, though dead. 20 VERACITY The Persians: Veracity. The most characteristically Persian virtue is Ver- acity. It was so thoroughly recognized all over the ancient world as such, that even Xenophon men- tions it in his Cyropedia, besides being universally witnessed to by contemporary history. The Shah Nahmeh of Firdausi gives many instances of the high popular estimation in which it was held. The lives of Feridun, Rustem, Kai-Khosrau, Isfendiyar, and Jemshid are full of it, while it is the favorite theme of the lyric poets of the classic period. The importance of Veracity cannot be overestim- ated. It would be impossible to conceive of the ex- istence of a state founded on any other basis, and the fact that lies do exist only testifies to the recog- nition of veracity as the rule. Veracity requires a high degree of spiritual dev- elopment. How often do the affections, the passions counsel a course other than the truth. Wise is he who is strong enough towards friend and foe alike to tell the truth, the whole truth, and nothing but the truth — the day of Judgment will have no un- pleasant surprising reminders for him. MARITAL FIDELITY 21 The Persian./": M&rit&l Fidelity. In a certain sense Persian morality resembles the Hindu standards, just as the Persian language is close kin to the Sanskrit, and though conjugal fidel- ity is here mentioned as a charadleristically Persian virtue, yet Hindu literature contains three of the most romantic instances of it — Sita in the Ramaya- na, and Savitri and Draupadi in the Mahabharata. They are the most charming women in the world — tender, aiFedlionate, patient, uncomplaining, self-sa- crificing, faithful and true. Nothing could exceed the old-world, jasmine-like fragrance of the legend of Savitri. Married by her own choice to a prince of whom it had been proph- esied that he had only one year to live, after one year of incomparable bliss she remembers his fate, and decides to save him, assured by her heart that to love nothing is impossible. For a whole week she watches day and night lest Yama, the Death-God, should come unawares; and to insure her watchful- ness she stands on her feet all the time. The fated time has passed safely, but her love suspedts the tricky Death-god. Her husband, over-confident, goes into the forest, but she follows closely. Sure enough Yama pounces upon him and draws his soul out of his body, but cannot carry it away, fascinated by Sa- vitri's voice. She sings him a marvellous song,' in which she offers herself to Yama in her husband's 22 MARITAL FIDELITV place — but this cannot be, though anything else she may demand. Seven times' she sang, and though six times refused, the seventh time she conquered, and led her husband home alive, to live with him in happiness till ripe old age. As is apparent in the classic case of Vasantasena, so among the Persians it is usually a matter of love at first sight. The Princess holds a 'swayamvara' or marriage-feast, to which all eligible youths are invit- ed, and love gives her the right to choose whom she will. So Rudabeh falls in love with Zal, so Kitabun falls in love with Gushtasp. But, this fateful choice once made, for better or for worse, for richer, for poorer, there is nothing but death that can separate wife from husband. The various stories in the Shah Nahmeh are long, but they all tell the same tale of monogamous (it is in this that the Persian trans- cends the Hindu ideal) conjugal fidelity: the greats ness of self-sacrifice, the awfulness of utter humility. It is a recital that brings warmth to the heart and tears to the eyes. There must be something true in that. It is not the abjeftness and bestiality of the love of a slave, but the great love of a noble soul, Hke God himself unwavering in tenderness and truth, capable of all things but dishonour. It is a crown of glory, an example for eternity. RESIGNATION 23 The Ar&,bi&.n>-: Reyi^n&.tion. 'Resignation' is expressed in the Arabian langua- ge by 'Islam'. The adoption of this word as a party catch-word by the Muhammadan religion is a suffi- cient commentary on the supreme emphasis its teachers lay on the doftrine of Resignation to the Will of God. Moreover, considering the number of the adherents of Islam, and the many centu- ries of its ascendancy in the East, it is easy to real- ize how great has been the influence of this concep-. tion. The Koran repeats it frequently. 'Say, no o- ther has been revealed to me, than that your God is one God: will ye therefore be resigned to him?' 'Resign yourselves wholly unto him.' 'But we have had knowledge bestowed upon us before this, and have been resigned unto God.' This is the secret of the sublime beauty of Per- sian Sufism. Jami's 'Salaman and Absal' sets this forth very superbly: That was the Discipline To which the living man himself devotes Till all the sensual dross be scorched away. And, to its pure integrity returned. His soul alone survives. But forasmuch As from a darling passion so divorced The wound will open and will bleed anew. Therefore the Sage would ever and anon Raise up and set before Salaman' s eyes The Phantom of the Past; but evermore Revealing one diviner, till the soul 24 RESIGNATION She filled, and blotted out the Mortal Love. For what is Zurah? What but that Divine Original, of wrhich the Soul of man Darkly possessed, by that fierce discipline At last he disengages from the dust. And flinging off the baser rags of sense. And all in intelleftual Light arrayed, 4s Conqueror and King he mounts the Throne nd v^ears the Crown of Human Glory, whence. Throne over Throne surmounting, he shall reign One with the Last and First Intelligence.' Resignation to the Will of God will become eas- ier to accept for the modern mind when interpreted in modern language. It is nothing but Conformity to Law — physical, moral and spiritual. The purpose of Resignation is to develop a charafter that shall so thoroughly have learnt to a.6t according to cert- ain laws that they become laws of its being, and it cannot ad; otherwise. In a certain sense it then has become a God, and by this union of itself with all Law it becomes such as to vibrate with the divine harmonies. Resignation or mysticism is therefore nothing but scientific spirituality. The first step is to discover the laws of God, by enquiry and refleftion; next to conform the self to them in pradlical life, whence results Union with God. Resignation, con- formity, Islam, Sufism — this is the mysticism of science. ELEMENTS OF PROPHECY 25 Chapter II The Chinese 6? Jdwpane./'e Sources. More than any people In the world the Chinese have suffered from lack of recognition — the causes of which are not far to seek, conservatism, modesty and the fearful difficulties of the language. But they command our respedt when we realize that they have ever numbered a third of the human race, and possess a literature quite equal in extent to the En- glish. But the trouble is that the Chinese are not acquainted with the English prophecy, nor the En- glish with the Chinese prophecy: hence either des- pises the other. So much however is certain, that the world has lost thereby. We cannot here go into the history of its literature, much as it is needed, in view of the dense ignorance prevailing about it. We will confine ourselves to pointing out their religious me- rits : moderation and toleration, duty and righteous- ness, charafter, and filiality — to which the Japanese add imitativeness and tender friendship. Pray, do not say these are minor virtues — in re- buttal we should be forced to instance the millions of lives slaughtered and tortured in the West be- cause of religious differences. Let us rather fully ap- preciate the tolerance and moderation of the East. 26 MODERATION The Chine./*e: Moder&.tion. Moderation is the charafteristically Chinese virtue. Confucius wrote a treatise about it, the 'Doftrine of the Mean', whose introduction is as follows: 'What Heaven has conferred is called the Nature; an accordance with this Nature is called the path of Duty; the regulation of this path is called Instruct- ion. The Path may not be left for an instant — if it could be left, it would not be the Path. 'On this account the superior man does not wait until he sees things to be cautious, nor till he hears things to be apprehensive. There is nothing more visible than what is secret, and nothing more mani- fest than what is minute.Therefore the superior man is watchful over himself, when he is alone. While there are no stirrings of pleasure, sorrow, anger or joy, the mind may be said to be in a state of equih- brlum. When those feelings have been stirred, and they act In their due degree, there ensues what may be called the state of Harmony. 'This equihbrlum is the great root from which all the great adtings in the world grow, and this harmo- ny Is the universal Path which they should all pur- sue. Let the states of equilibrium and harmony ex- ist in perfe6tion, and a happy order will prevail throughout heaven and earth, and all things will be MODERATION 27 nourished and flourish. Perfedt is the virtue which is according to the Mean ! Rare have they long been among the people, who could practise it ! 'I know how it is that the Path of the Mean is not walked in. The knowing go beyond it, and the stupid do not come up to it. The men of talents and virtue go beyond it, and the worthless do not come up to it. How is the Path of the Mean untrodden!' These are immortal words, and praftlcal, too ! It is in this aspedt of practicality that they differ from Aristotle's, in the Nicomachean Ethics. Perhaps it may be impossible to decide justly whether it was Confucius's good fortune or merit — but the fact is that these his words have been memorized by milli- ons, and for centuries. And they have left their im- press visibly in the apparently miraculous stability of the Chinese Empire, and have been reflected, as it were, in the practical application to personal pro- blems expressed in the several odes of the great poetry classic, the Shi-King. 28 DUTY AND RIGHTEOUSNESS The Chinese : Duty a^nd Rigteou^ne^^ Confucius and Mencius, both of them, preach Duty and Righteousness. 'Confucius is a consistent theist. He believes in immortality for man. His aim in this life was perfect virtue. His system of edu- cation was superior to that of the Hebrew, or any of the Western nations of that time. Of his theory of morals a striking analogy has been discovered be- tween the so-called Golden Rule of Jesus, All things whatsoever ye would that men should do un- to you, do you even so to them, and Confucius' A- nalects, (xv:23), Tsze-kung asked, saying. Is there one word which may serve as a rule for practice for all one's life ? The Master said. Is not Reciprocity such a word ? What you do not want done to your- self, do not do to others; and again, (v). What I do not wish men to do to me, I also wish not to do to men. The same things are stated in the Doctrine of the Mean, and in the Great Learning.' (Legge). Again, Confucius says. If a man be without the virtues of humanity, what has he to do with the rules of propriety ? The student of virtue has no contentions. It is only the truly virtuous man, who can love, or who can hate others. DUTY AND RIGHTEOUSNESS 29 Confucius understands the full reach of virtue. "The way of the superior man may be found, in its simple elements, in the intercourse of common men and women : but in its utmost reaches, it shines brightly through heaven and earth. If a man in the morning hear the right way, he may die in the even- ing without regret." Mencius thought not otherwise. "Benevolence and righteousness, and these shall be my only themes. Why must you use the word. Profit?" Be- sides, in Mencius' Book of the Three Words, the universal Chinese spelling-book, he insists con- tinually on virtues of all kinds, as the means of sanctification. So the San-Tseu-king says : "The Three Powers are Heaven, earth and man. The three bonds of human society are the respect of the minister for his prince, the love of the son for his father, the love of the wife for the husband. Next follow humanity, justice, urbanity, prudence, fideli- ty. . . The affection of the father for the son, the submission of the wife to her husband, the love of the elder for the younger brother, the respect of the younger for the elder, the subordination of the younger to elder persons, the affection of friends for their comrades, the imposing gravity of the prince, the probity of the minister, these are the ten duties that are of obligation to all men." Such quo- tations could be duplicated indefinitely. 30 RIGHTEOUSNESS Mencius' view of righteousness included some psychological disquisitions. "Maintain firm the will, and do no violence to the passion-nature.This is the passion-nature: It is exceedingly great and exceed- ingly strong. Being nourished by rectitude, and sus- taining no injury, it fills up all between heaven and earth. It is the mate and assistant of righteousness and reason. Without it, man is in a state of starva- tion. It is produced by the accumulation of right- eous deeds : it is not to be obtained by any incident- al acts of righteousness. If the mind does not feel complacency in the conduct, the nature becomes starved. I therefore say, Kaou has never understood righteousnesss, because he makes it something ex- ternal." CHARACTER 31 The Chinese : Char&.cter The whole purpose of intellectual and moral edu- cation is the forming of a character, which may be relied on as a fixed quantity, and which the Chinese called 'the superior man' — in Western parlance 'gen- tlemanliness'. To become this is the ideal of the Chi- nese child and man. Confucius says: "Hold sinceri- ty and faithfulness as your first principles. How can a man conceal his character? In the way of the Su- perior Man are four things 1 have not yet attain- ed. To serve my father as I would require my son to serve me: to this have I not attained; to serve my prince, as I would require my minister to serve me: to this have I not attained; to serve my elder bro- ther as I would require my younger brother to serve me: to this have I not yet attained; to set the ex- ample in behaving to a friend as I would require him to behave to me; to this have I not attained. Earnest in practising the ordinary virtues, and care- ful in speaking about them; if, in his practice, he has anything defective, the Superior Man dares not but exert himself; and if, in his words, he has any excess he dares not allow himself such license. Thus his words have respect to his actions, and his actions have respect to his words; is it not just such an en- tire sincerity which marks the Superior Man ?" 32 CHARACTER More plainly still does Mencius set forth the fix- ed nature of a character, and its words. 'They only are men of education who without a certain liveli- hood are able to maintain a fixed heart. As to the people, if they have not a certain livelihood, it fol- lows that they will not have a fixed heart. And if they have not a fixed heart, there is nothing which they will not do in the way of self-abandonment, of moral deflection, of depravity, and of wild license. When they have thus been involved in crime, to fol- low them up and punish them, this is to entrap the people. How can such a thing as entrapping the people be done under the rule of a benevolent man?" Poor people are in a bad way : therefore custom should guide them. 'What leisure have they to cul- tivate propriety and righteousness?' Character is self-poised. Conscience is the final arbiter. Mencius says: 'Formerly the philosopher Tsang said to Tsze-seang, Do you love valour ? I heard an account of great valour from the Master. It speaks thus: 'If, on self-examination I find that I am not upright, shall I not be in fear of even a poor man in his loose garments of hair-cloth ? If on self-examination, I find that I am upright, I will go forwards against thousands and tens of thousands.' DIVINE FILIALITY 33 The Chinese : Divine Filiality. We all know so well that Filiality is a character- istically Confucian and Chinese belief and practice that there is no need to emphasize it. But it is in- teresting to note the process by which it developed the more sublimely spiritual Divine Filiality. A revered father died: he remained beloved and revered. Gradually the reverence extends to the ancestor of the tribe, and thence to the Emperor, who officially is called the Son of Heaven. But we are mostly interested with the moral as- pect and result of this Divine Filiality. Heaven is then a loving, tender, wise and omnipotent Ruler. So Confucius teaches that 'He who offends against Heaven has none to whom he can pray.' Mencius thus addresses a prince, 'If you do good, among your descendants in after generations there shall be one who will attain to the Imperial dignity. A prince lays the foundation of the inheritance, and hands down the beginning which he has made, doing what mav be continued by his successors. As to the ac- complishment of the great result, that is with Hea- ven. What is that Ts'e to you, O prince? Be strong to do good. That is all your business.' 'Be always studious to be in harmony with the ordinances of God; so will you certainly get for yourself much happiness.' 34 TENDER FRIENDSHIP The J&.p&.ne^e : Tender Friendship. What is meant by the virtue of 'tender friend- ship' which the Japanese have uttered to the world may be gathered from the following exquisite Japan- ese poem : The Wife: While other womens' husbands ride Along the road in proud array. My husband up the rough hill-side On foot must wend his weary way. This grievous sight with bitter pain My bosom fills, and many a tear Steals down my cheek, and I would fain Do aught to help my husband dear. Come, take the mirror and the veil. My mother's parting gifts to me; In barter they must sure avail To buy an horse to carry thee. The Husband: An I should purchase me an horse. Must not my wife still sadly walk f No, no ! Though stony is our course. We'll trudge along, and sweetly talk. THE SEMITIC SOURCES 35 Chapter III The Semitic Sources. The name 'Semitic' has been generally applied to those races whose origins may be traced within the Mesopotamian valley. It has been used to ap- ply to the Assyrio-Babylonians, the Canaanites, the Arabians (who have been considered elsewhere, in a better connection ) and latterly the Egyptians, on the supposition that the latter were half Semitic. But here we have nothing to do with ethnology; we can use the name only as a convenient grouping of certain races which more or less were destined to play the part of formative influences in the later religious developments of historic Christianity, and through which the several elements of Christianity can be satisfactorily accounted for. Just as its progeny, it is a brilliant group. Start- ing with Egypt as a civilization extending over thousands of years of prehistoric times, the present study will lead to the immense and cultured Assy- rio-Babylonian empire whose traditions and legends have, in Jewish transcription, served as creation-sto- ry to the whole civilized world for twice two thous- and years. The Zarashustrian influence has always been one of close contact with the Divine, and has, through the Jewish intermediation, given to the world one of the aptest and most fascinating char- acterizations of the nature of God — that of fire. 36 JUDGMENT The E^pti&,n^ : Judgment. There can be no need of vindicating the concep- tion of a Day of Judgment as a strictly Egyptian notion. The famous 'Book of the Dead', as it has been called, is one of the most ancient books of the world, and Is one of the weirdest, most poetic, most affedling — the fragmentary remains of the funereal ritual according to which more than seven hundred million souls were laid to rest, in successive ages. It sets forth a Judgment in the 'Hall of the Two Truths', where forty-two Judges scrutinize the mo- ral and spiritual attainments of the deceased. Each Judge stands for a certain virtue, and before each one of them must the soul be able to declare its in- nocency ere it pass onwards to the full vision of Osiris. Every sort of virtue is insisted on, from ve- racity to kindness, honesty and loyalty, especially to the defenceless. But it is the underlying fundamental conception which here demands our attention: the standing be- fore forty-two moral Judges, and the passing thro' Gates, each of which symbolized some moral qual- JUDGMENT 37 ity. This is the key-note to which the national E- gyptian heart vibrated: that merely dying is not suf- ficient; that much depends on how a man dies; that merely living a respectable life is not sufficient for admission to the immediate presence of the Divine. A man cannot hope to proceed on the further reaches of the destiny of his soul in the realms be- yond unless here below he attain a certain moral standard. How much nobler is not this conception than that of sacrifying victims ! And this Egyptian lesson has not yet been learnt generally, nor ever will be, except by those whose conscience has been sufficiently awaked to detect that the face of Vicari- ousness is only a mask through which lower the eyes of Injustice, and Tolerance of Evil. ye Lords of Truth! O thou great God, Lord of Truth! 1 have come to Thee, my Lord! I have brought myself to see Thy blessings. I have known Thee, I have known Thy Name! I have known the Names of the Forty-two Gods Who are with Thee in the Hall of the Two Truths, Living by catching the wicked, fed off their blood. On the Day of Reckoning Words, Before the Good Being, the Justified. Placer of Spirits, Lord of Truth is Thy name. 3? MANIFESTATION TO LIGHT The Egypti&n^: M&.nifeyi:&.tion to Li^ht. But the truth of Judgment is only another side of that of the "Manifestation to Light." Indeed, this is the proper name of the "Book of the Dead." The deceased did not undergo judgment merely for the sake of being distressed, or tortured. It was only an inexorable condition of being "manifested to light, " with all the blessed spirits, in the presence of Osiris. This then was the purpose of life, to behold the Beau- tiful Vision. Surely, it was the noblest ideal ; safeguar- ded as it was by the inexorable judgment through which alone it could be attained. This "manifestation to light" expresses in language that has not yet been surpassed in accuracy the no- blest hopes of man. We have a blind hope and faith that somehow good must be the end of ill, that the dead Osiris must return someday more gloriuos, and powerful than ever, albeit perhaps more spiritual. It was, after all, only an old Greek myth, of Dionysios, yet one which has repeated itself all over the world. So Barbarossa, so the Cid Campeador, so all great national heroes have remained alive in the hearts of those who loved them. It was not possible that they should have died.They are only hidden somewhere. They will surely return, when the right time comes. They will conquer and be glorious, only, not now. MANIFESTATION TO LIGHT 39 This vague yearning that the good must survive the evil that tho the sun in Winter disappears, yet in the Spring It must return instinct with new life — this is a blind faith which, although often born from inabil- ity to grasp scientifically unpleasant facts, yet does express a very deep truth, and expresses it for those persons whose education and spirituality are not pro- nounced enough to permit them to wing their spirits to heights sufficiently high. That in spite of the darkness of this world good is the outcome of ill, that the final reason of life is perfect at-one-ment with God, that nothing can satisfy the soul of man ulti- mately but resting on the breast of God, these are the sublime hopes that only the most spiritual may hope to become certain of through personal knowl- edge. These truths are represented however for the more unspiritual, and less wise, by those lower truths, which should be judiciously removed as op- portunity offers. As a rule the less educated oppose the religious reformer not so much because they would for a moment oppose truth, if they realized what it was, but that they have grown to associate perfectly legitimate and moral standards with these superstitions — just as every race has attributed its in- herent morality to its dogmatic beliefs, instead of realizing that their morality has survived often in spite of their most immoral doctrines. The conse- quence is, if the reformer destroys those superstitions the blind believer imagines that he has destroyed 40 MANIFESTATION TO LIGHT morality along with the doctrine. And that is with some the outcome. The rash reformer takes away the faith of men without substituting in its place any positive teaching, or moral power. The ideal state will be reached when man understands that morality has survived all creeds,and has often survived in spite of them ; that not one creed, but a thousand creeds have in turn claimed the allegiance and so-called loy- alty of men. Morality is the only 'residuum' which all good men everywhere have approved of and taught always, although in the most differing lan- guages, with the most differing symbols, and it must be granted, in the most different degrees of perfec- tion. It is this morality which through the con- science has given the good man a taste of blessedness which is a foretaste and earnest guaranteeing that life is not all in vain, but that although we, working on the wrong side of the web, cannot see, nevertheless the Master- workman can behold the growing perfec- tion of the divine design. This sublime faith in a final manifestation to life is a supreme union with the Divine, this surely is one of the noblest lessons the Egyptians have taught the world. INTELLECTUAL CULTURE 4I The A^^yrio-Babylonian^: Intellectuawl Culttire. The Assyrians were an extremely cultured race. From the remains of the libraries discovered in the ruins of their great cities it would seem that they possessed culture of all kinds. Grammars, diction- aries, treatises on mathematics, epic and lyric poems, serious history, stories: all these departments of cul- ture are represented among them. But the Babylon- ians were still more learned than the Assyrians. As- tronomy, for instance, flourished among them thou- sands of years before it was re-discovered in the far West. Far and wide was spread the fame of theii learned men, known as Magi. It is mainly their legends and epics we care for There was the legend of King Sargina. In child- hood he was saved from enemies by being enclosed in an ark made water-tight with pitch, and commit- ted to the tender mercy of the current of the Great Rivers. He was found, and after made King. It is an interesting tale, adapted in many languages. Then there is the fascinating legend of the revolt in heaven; of how one of the Great Spirits sinned, and was cast down into darkness, after a great fight; and how, since, he became a great power for evil. Again, there is the grotesque tale of Bel and the Dragon, which, like the former tale, has been adapt- ed by many races, so interesting were they. 42 INTELLECTUAL CULTURE Then there are accounts of the Creation of the World, comprising the Cuthean, the Chaldean, and 'non-Semitic' versions. But the most important are the fragments of Tablets I-VI (II lost) of an 'Epic of Creation' that has commended itself so tho- roughly to the interest of humanity that, through the means of its Hebrew adaptation, it has been ad- opted as serious cosmology by the Christian world. Besides all this, there is the great 'Izdubar Epic'. It tells of I, the enmity and friendship between Iz- dubar and Heabani; 2, Izdubar's fight with Hum- baba; 3? the revenge of the Goddess Ishtar (Venus); 4, Izdubar's descent into Hades, with narration of the Deluge, and the saving of Xisuthru's family in an ark; and S> Izdubar's latter days. This was the source of all the later Descents into Hell; and as to the Deluge, though there is no prehistoric race, not even the North American Indians, that is lacking some such sort of a tradition, nevertheless the tal- lying of the details proves that this was the source of the classical Noachian form, which is still con- sidered history by the great majority of religious people, A.D, 1900. To have exercised so wide an influence on the world, and for 30 centuries, has been a destiny re- served for no other race; and it was an undeserved blessing for the bigoted, uncivilized Palestinian races to be compelled to learn something, even tho' they adapted it to the glorification of their own race. DIVINE COMMUNION 43 The Ay*^yrio-Bak.bylonI&.n^: Divine Communion. But it Is not in Intelledual Culture only that the Assyrio-Babylonians have ruled the world, and rule it still, thousands of years since their greatest cities became mounds of sand. They contributed to the inner life of the most religious and devout people that penetrating sense of moral sin, that intimate communion with the Divine, which may be exem- plified, for lack of a better and well-known example, in the 'Imitation of Christ.' Everything that man does is attributed to the Di- vinity. 'The Lord' is ever on the lips of his people. It is the Lord who conquers on the field of battle. It Is the Lord who inspires courage in the warrior. It Is the Lord who defends his sanftuary, who loves the men 'after his heart'. It Is he who guides and di- refts every human event, who punishes the evil, and saves the oppressed. He strengthens the good, and pardons the sins of the repentant, accepting propi- tiation for their sins. Could anything be more devout than the follow- ing supplications ? O God, Thou my Creator, grasp my failing arms, Direfl the breath of my mouth. Guide my hands, O God of Light! 44 DIVINE COMMUNION Lord, let not thy servant sink ! In the waters of the roaring flood, grasp Thou his hand ! Lord, my transgressions are many, great are my sins! The Lord, in the wrath of His heart, heaped shame on me; The Great God, in the severity of His heart, overwhelmed me. O God, by Thy commandment. Let my sin be atoned for, let my transgression be wiped out ! He who trembles not before his God, Shall be cut off as the reed. Like to the Star of Heaven does he inspire the glory of the Sun, Like waters of the night doth he disappear. In the heavens, who is exalted ? Thou, Thou alone art exalted. When thy aweful commandment is announced in Heaven, The Gods throw themselves in the dust. On the earth all spirits tremble. For dying men, who shall not pray ? Like a bird, may my soul fly to a lofty place. To the holy hands of my God, may it ascend. The man who is departing in glory. May his soul shine radiant as brass. To that man may the Sun give life And Marduk the Son of Heaven grant him an abode of Happiness. With such hymns have the Assyrians inspired the religious poetry of all succeeding ages, for it was while captive among them that the Hebrews learnt to write Psalms; at any rate it is certain that it was while among them that some of the sublimest psalms were writen; witness: By the waters of Babylon we sat down and wept; They that carried us away captive required of us a song. PURITY 45 The Zaurashu^ri&.n^: Purity. No other religious literature comprises in its tech- nichal repertory (its catch-words, its 'stock phrases') the word 'purity'. Every second line, almost, repeats it — consequently it must have been continually be- fore their minds, and must have constituted one of their Scriptures' chief messages to the world. Judge for yourself from the following, one of the oldest hymns in the Zend-Avesta. Best of all goods is Purity. Glory, glory to him who is best and purest in Purity. For he who ruleth from Purity, He abideth according to the Will of the Lord. The All-wise giveth gifts For the works which man doeth for the world for the Lord. He who protefteth the poor giveth the Kingdom to Ahura. Best of all earthly goods is truth. Glory, glory on high for ever To him who is best in heaven. And truest in truth upon earth. 46 THE ANGELIC HIERARCHY The Zsitd^.j-huj^i^nj". The Angelic Hierewrchy. The Christ, !wnd The Renovation-Millennium. Zarashustrian dodtrine changed perceptibly du- ring the course of the ages. When Spitama Zara- shustra founded the reHgion that was later called from his name, it was doubtless simpler, more pri- mitive than it became later, and was probably a monotheism, the first thought of a lofty mind, that there is a God, Ahura-Mazda. The necessity of accounting for Evil soon drove untrained minds to divide this monotheism into two conflidling principles, Ormuzd the Good, and Ahri- man, the Dark. So natural is some such process, that it is found everywhere; for instance, the writers of Job praftically divide Jahweh, the Supreme, into a Good Lord, not above conversing, struggling and even betting with Satan the Evil; compare also the 'Faust' of Goethe for naturalness of the thought. But not found everywhere was the next step, na- tural enough, indeed. The Divinity naturally must have messengers, subordinate spirits whose fundlion it was to carry out the commands of the Good or Evil Master, 'gifts which Ahura-Mazda, as the only Lord, grants to those who worship him'. How ma- ny of these Ministers can there, must there, shall THE ANGELIC HIERARCHY 47 there be ? Why of course seven, the Babylonian sa- cred number! (so also the Hebrews took the Baby- lonian 7-day week, and seventh day Sabbath.) Well, and what can, must and shall the names of these ce- lestial Councillors, of these Seven Immortal Bene- faftors, Ameshas-pentas, be ? Why, of course. Life, Vohu-mano; Asha-vahishta, Truth; Armaiti, piety; Ameretad, Immortality; Haurvatad, Health; and Kshathra Vairya, Abundance of Wealth. There can, must and shall be a high Archangel who stands be- tween God and man, a Great Teacher of the Good Religion, by whose instrudion the Prophet himself may have learnt it. His name can, must and shall be Sraosha (Messiah and Christ both mean 'Anoint- ed' in Hebrew and Greek). Hence there must be al- so a Day of Restoration on which He will return to judge the quick and the dead. We have already seen that the Hebrews while in captivity learned the legends of Moses, the Fall in Heaven, and the Creation. We also saw that their Babylonian masters forced them, though very un- willing, to learn and sing psalms. Is it any wonder the Hebrews borrowed also the Zarashustrian An- gelic Hierarchy, with Messiah and Restoration ? The Angelic Hiera>.rchy reappeared in Isaiah, xi.2, as Wisdom, Understanding, Counsel, Might, Knowledge, and Fear-of-the-Lord; and later still in the Qabalah (Rabbi Ben Akibai, A.D. lao,) as the 10 Sephiroth or Breaths, by name Malchut, Yesod, 48 ZOROASTRIAN ANGELIC HIERARCHY Hod, Netsah, Tiphereth, Geburath, Chesed, Binah, Hochmah, and Kether. These names of Angels sound very picturesque; but they are only Kingdom, Foundation, Love, Strength, Splendour, Power, Mercy, Intelligence, Wisdom and Crown (diredl fa- brication of meaningless, unphilological names had to await Mormonism and Oahspe). Further, this childish trick of personifying qualities led to the still more childish device of making an acrostic out of Deut. vi.4,5; ^^^^ deriving thence 600 3-letter com- binations which, by the simple addition of 'el' form- ed as many Angels, of whom Gabriel and Michael survive in the Bible. As this angelic host was too unhandy to last long, Dionusios the Areopagite (so named to impersonate the one mentioned Acts 17. 34, but not earlier than 530 A.D.) picked out of the Bible, with fine disregard for origin, context or order Seraphim, Cherubim, Thrones, Dominions, Virtues, Powers, Princedoms, Archangels, Angels. And these became Christian tradition, and Dante Alighieri consecrated it in his 'Commedia'. Later, we find the names of the ten antediluvian patriarchs interpreted mystically to mean ages of creation or races. Similarly, the ten princes of lost Atlantis, handed down by Plato in the Critias, 113, as Atlas and Eumelus; Ampheres and Evaemon, Mneseus and Autochthon; Elasippus and Mestor; Azaes and Diaprepes. Strange to relate, it is not impossible to trace a similarity of meaning of these ten heroes of Atlantis, THE ANGELIC HIERARCHY 49 with the ten counsellor-princes of Xibalba in the Quiche (Central American) sacred book, the Popol Vuh (2.1) : Patan, Cuchumaquiq; Ahalpuh, Quiqxiq, Quiqrixqaq, Quiqre, Xiqiripat, Ahalgama, Chamia- holom, and Chamiabak. To this extent can coinci- dence run. So much did the world need a savior or mediator, that Zoroastrianism developed one in Mithras, lord of Truth, the highest of twenty-eight second-class divinities, and ruler of the universe. He is god of the sun and light, day, and enlightenment. He is the divine friend (mitra) . He watches over the human soul also in the next world, defending it from impure spirits, and leading it to the realms of bliss. He is all-seeing and hearing, and is repre- sented with a club ; also with a short sword plunged into the neck of the bull, on which he is standing. This worship, developed into a mystery rite; and 'mithraei' or initiatory chapels, for at least the first three degrees, were spread all over Europe, as far as Britain and Spain. His birthday was fixed on the 25th of December, and the chief mysteries were celebrated at the spring equinox. Among the rites was a baptism, a partaking of mystical food, of flour and water, accompanied by sacred formulas. It was suppressed A. D. 378, but not before it had filled a wide-spread need for a mediating savior's help. The Mithraic degrees, as given by Staniland Wake, were twelve : the Warrior on his horse, Bull, so THE ANGELIC HIERARCHY Lion, as general initiatory degrees. Then came the Vulture, Ostrich, Raven, apparently animals of the earth. Then the Griffin, Hero, and Scarabeus, of the fiery element. Last, the aerial Eagle, Hawk and Father of Fathers. Franz Cumont, however, re- duces them to seven degrees only. The Restoration Idea was needed by all devout people to comfort them under the triumph of evil in the world. The strife between Sraosha (obedi- ence) and his good angels, and Ahrlman with his Devas will go on for five thousand years, until at last three prophets, sprung from Zoroaster, will appear. They will convert all mankind to Zoroas- trlanism; all evil will be conquered and annihilated. Ahriman will vanish forever, and creation will be restored to its primitive purity. The Stoics took up much the same idea, looking for a conflagration by fire, after which every part of nature would be restored to primal happiness and beauty. The millenium is a modern term testifying to the hold which this idea has achieved over the human mind. There was to be a general resurrection, just preceding the last judgment, to foretell which Sosiosh, the spiritually begotten son of Zoroaster, was to have been sent. Life was to be everlasting and holy for a thousand years ; at the end of which another cataclysm was to pave the way for further world-progress. This idea has survived in many forms. THE DIVINE FIRE 5 1 The Z&.r&^hu^tri&.n^: The Divine Fire. The conception of God as a consuming Fire — so beautiful, so apt, so incisive, so true, is also owed by the world to Zarashustrianism, the which was known indeed as Fire-worship, or Sun-worship. It is easy enough to understand how this arose. For if Ormuzd is opposed to his Adversary, repre- senting light as against darkness, how should he not be worshipped under the symbol of Fire, the great and eternal light-giving element ? Thus the Immort- al Benefactor, the Divine Councillor Asha-vahishta 'represents the blazing flame of Fire, the Light in luminaries, and brightness and splendour of any kind whatever, wherever it may exist. The first part of the name asha, plural of ashem, has vari- ous meanings, such as reilitude, righteousness, truth; and its epi- thet vabishta means originally most splendid, beautiful, but after- wards used in the general sense of best. Light being the nature of Ahura-Mazda, and being believed to pervade the whole good cre- ation, Asha-vahishta represents the omnipresence of the Divine Be- ing. Light maintaining the vitality of the whole creation, animate and inanimate, and being the cause of all growth, Asha-vahishta is the preserver of all life, and all that is good. He represents, in this respeft, the Divine Providence.' The Fourth Gospel is evidently Zasashustrian in its account of the strife between cosmic Light and Darkness, in the expressions 'Light of the World', and 'Children of the Light'. Small wonder, how- ever, since the whole sedt of Pharisees was Zoroast- rian not only in doftrine (teaching the Resurredion) but even in name (Parsee=Pharisee). £2 MAGNANIMITY Chapter IV The Hellenic Sources. Not until one counts up the number of epics di- redtly written under Homeric guidance can one re- alize the masterfulness of the Homeric chants. Did you object to this that our civilization is Roman, not Greek? But at what Pierian spring did the Ro- mans drink ? The effect of the Greek inspiration may be seen distinctly in the mediaeval transfigura- tion of Europe at the touch of the magic wand of the re-discovery of Greek literature and philosophy at the hands of Erasmus and the Humanists. The Greeks: Heroic Magnanimity It is possible that Aristotle was only voicing the general Greek ideal when in his Nicomachean Ethics he set forth as his ideal man the Magnanimous one, the 'megalopsychos', the great-souled hero — 'Great- heart'. At any rate, this is the ideal writ so large on every page of Homer's that he who runs may read. Both the Iliad and Odyssey set forth nothing but the picturesque results of the immensity of the wraths of men and Gods — of Achilles, of Hera, of Poseidon; the fearful brutality of Achilles against Hektor, and the greatness of the sorrows and mad- ness of Ajax. With all his meanness and deceit O- dysseus looms up as a hero, for he possesses great might, and, on the day of necessity, can be brave, MAGNANIMITY S3 and strike hard blows. The greatness of his mis- fortunes, with the Gods in wrath against him, with the special appeals to Zeus in his behalf, his des- cent into Hades, his bravely endured sufferings, his patience, his wisdom, his genuine and faithful love to his son, and wife, and doting father Laertes — all these are elements of great-souledness. It is impossible to estimate this Magnanimity at its real full value until the Homeric charaders are compared with those of later poets in more or less conscious imitation of Homer — the Aeneid, the Pharsalia, the Lusiad, the Henriad, Paradise Lost; the best of them, the 'plus Aeneas' is but a tawdry, slavish imitation. 'Pius' he may have been, but hardly humanly Magnanimous, like the 'venerable goddesses endowed with human speech'. Odysseus in Hades, seeing the wronged Ajax, exclaims, 'Oh, would that I had not conquered in such a contest !' Such a regret honours a man, even so great a rogue as Odusseus — while no such regret honours the 'pious' Aeneas at sight of the wronged Dido. This Magnanimity is it which includes recognition of his own faults; humility, the touchstone of greatness. But how could we leave the subject of Greek Magnanimity without even mentioning Aeschulos's 'Prometheus Bound', 'unbound' by Shelley ? Or the sublime 'Philoktetes'? Or Sophokles' Oiduposes — ■ or the magic name of Antigone ? Or Euripides The human, with his droppings of warm tears } 54 SOCIAL SUCCESS The Greeks: Soci&l Succey./*. The acknowledged moral principle of Homer, of the Greek nation, philosophers and dramatists was to kalon, which being interpreted ( literally, 'that which is befitting') in good English 'Social Success'. For instance, in Aeschulos's 'Prometheus Bound' that first trumpet-blast of Greek individuality, as contrasted with the power of Zeus, the Chorus while approving of Prometheus' heroism, nevertheless blame him for 'not reverencing Adrasteia', or, in other words, for not bending to the Powers-that-be, just or unjust. That this latter was the adtual Greek principle of morality may become more evident when it is realized that in every drama all adtion is performed in full sight and hearing of the Chorus, which, in certain senses represents the social factor. The individual can never act freely — Sophokles too blames even Antigone for not bowing to the powers in authority. And consequently in the Drama un- selfish action is rare. Some form of self-interest some desire to stand well with the people, with its cheap, 'banal' morality is ever the dominating spring of action. Even Aristotle does this, in positing as the end of all actions 'that which 8^,11 desire' and SOCIAL SUCCESS 55 surely &!! includes logically not only *the wise', but also the common people, 'hoi polloi'. And in the Homeric poems are met long homilies on the sub- jedt in favour of obedience to the tricky and hard- hearted Atreidae. But the standard of Social Success, even if it do seem time-serving in comparison with an individual- ism which obeys its own light in spite of the whole earth, heaven and hell (Aristotle does seem coward- ly when he dares not leave true happiness to consist of an 'energy of the soul according to virtue' with- out the social-success qualification 'en bio teleio — in an externally fortunate life'); nevertheless it may be interpreted to represent a noble truth. While conscience must be followed to the death, as did Sokrates, yet the sanifying social factor of e- ducation, of fellowship, of the 'communion of saints' should never be forgotten. Each man has his own gift, not like that of any other man. They are all needed to complete each other in the 'four-square' New Jerusalem. Now it is just this element of sa- nity which spiritual people are most likely to lack; and therefore the standard of Social Success, if in- terpreted exclusively of the approval of a Divine Society might furnish a very valuable norm or fly- wheel to keep the rest of the machinery working in harmonious 'wholeness.' Such then might be the highest usefulness of the national Greek standard of morality, ♦« k^lon, Social Success. 56 OBJECTIVITY The Greeks: Objectivity. The discussion of the moral standard of Social Success, to ka^lon, led diredtly to the merit of Ob- jeftivity which the Homeric poems possess. Now this element of Objedtivity in the poems of Homer has been the subject of such universal com- ment that we need but to mention it here — the sa- nity which speaks from every line of the text. The foundation of all sanity is really acquaintance with, love for, and contact with Nature. The wind is 'an excellent companion'; the 'barren sea', the 'black ships', the 'divine rosy-fingered dawn', the 'purple sea', the 'descending night' — all these are telling bits of description, perfumed with sanity. All this Objectivity stands out so much the more as many modern writers have seemed to be unable to shake themselves loose from morbidness, and to hew their work out of the block with the gigantic, yet not impure (like the obscene Whitman) master- strokes of a Homer. But what has this to do with religion ? Much ev- ery way. You may sneer at 'natural religion'; but it remains that a religion that is not natural is unnatu- ral ! Emerson advanced the crowning arguments: The word Miracle as pronounced by the Christian Churches gives a false impression; it it Monster. It is not one with the blowing clover and the falling rain ... In the sublimest flights of the soul reftitude is never surmounted, love is never outgrown. LOVE OF FLOWERS 57 Chapter V The Surviving Aboriginak.1 Sources* We cannot give more than the merest hint of the more salient prophetic charafteristics of the Surviv- ing Aboriginal Sources. Yet they are extremely va- luable, indicating the most significant stages by which the existing moral and religious organizations have, in the past, developed into modern conditions. The Naihuactl^: Love of Flowers. Doubtless, all races have, more or less, loved and celebrated flowers. But not even the Persians made them the centre of their literary life, as did the Na- huatls, the Mexican Indians. Indeed, so frequent is their use of the word that we Northern readers who are not perpetually intoxicated with the perfumes and hues of the tropical flowers feel that this word is used almost too frequently. Yet, how significant this over-use is ! I, the Singer, entered into the House strewn with flowers. Where stood upright the emerald drum, when awaiting The Giver of Life, the nobles strewed Flowers around the place. Where the head is bowed for lustration, the house of corrupt odors Where the burning fragrant incense spreads and penetrates Intoxicating our souls in the presence of the Cause of All, 5 8 LOVE OF FLOWERS Where shall we obtain the fragrance which intoxicates our souls? We do not yet know the various Flower-songs, with which We may rejoice the Cause of All, however desirous we be. O Friend, would that thou couldst bring to my Instrument Various Flowers, That thou shouldst clothe it in brilliant Oco Flowers, And offer them, and lift thy voice in a new and worthy song To rejoice the Cause of All. Wherefore, while the Soul is in life, should we recall That our souls must be scattered hither and thither. And that wherever on earth we go, we are to be destroyed ? Ah, hide it, turn from it; go listen to some new and worthy song. Delight thy soul with the pervading fragrance of the Flowers, as I, the Singer, lift my voice in a new song That I may rejoice the Cause of All. Come hither, thou my friend, to where stands the Dawn, Decked with Flowers, gleaming with brightness. Green with the out-stretched plumes of the Quetzal-bird, Where are looked for and cared for the seats near the Cause of All Leave the place of night and clouds, turn hither with us. Lift thy voice in the New Song I sing So that I may rejoice the Cause of All, As the Dawn approaches in the house of thy heart. Of what use is it that I frame my sad songs. That I recall to mind the youths, the beloved children. The precious relatives, the dear friends. Famous and celebrated as they are here on earth ? Who now hears their fame, their deeds ? Where can they find them ? All of us are but mortal, and our home is there In the Hereafter, where there is life without end. MILDNESS 59 The Uncont&.ininak.ted Aborigines: Mildness. At first sight it would seem as if Mildness was the last virtue to be found among what the Aryan complacently calls 'savages'; and yet it is in their li- terature that Mildness has obtained the greatest re- cognition and illustration. We must, however, make one distinction. Con- tadt with our kind of civilization ( intoxicants and vice ) changes the uncivilized incredibly. And this change is rarely for the better — it is as easy to ac- quire the vices of civilization as to lose the native virtues. Stronger races, of course, both keep their own, and learn new virtues, as the Japanese have latterly done — insisting on Japan for the Japanese. But this is heresy in the eyes of those nations that make it their business to civilize for revenue only; and yet without this touch of civilized brutality the Japanese, in spite of all imaginable virtues would have been swiftly driven to the wall by those same 'Christian' civilizers. But the Japanese are an exception. The Ameri- can Indians first welcomed the genial Puritans, and fed the starving Spaniards, who proceeded to rob and massacre them. Even 'missionaries' reported the Amazulu gentle and pacific, until crazed by Christ- 6o MILDNESS ianity-professing 'civilizing' agencies. The Chinese, who for 6000 years had administered a quarter of humanity in serene tranquility, are by 'civilized' na- tions forced to admit opium, at the point of the bayonet. The first visitors to the Aleutian Islanders were ship-wrecked Russian sailors, who were with open arms received into a patriarchal community- life, being clothed and enriched — a kindness which they repaid by enslaving, torturing and magsacring them until there survives only one tenth of them, who are intoxicated, ignorant and starving. But besides these anthropological observations, we have documentary testimony thereto; the sweet- ly childlike Lettish folk-tale, and the tenderly affec- tionate songs of the Malagasys from Madagascar, Chief of all surviving aboriginal literature however is the sublime drama 'OUanta' which ineffaceably pictures the Peruvian culture of the civilization of the Incas, in which slavery was a beneficent patern- alism. For instance, we read of a high-priest who hastens, in order to free a prisoner, on the grounds that it happened to be a feast-day, on which a liber- ation would be peculiarly appropriate; but even so, he has to vie with other priests who covet the hon- or of arriving at the prison first; for 'it is the great privilege of the priesthood to throw off every bond and to liberate.' BARDISM 6l Chapter VI The Northern Sources. To the Northern sources of prophetic Inspiration only a few words can be devoted, however many the Islandic, the language of the runic Eddas and the glorious Sagas, deserve. The I./*I&.ndic World: Bak.rdiym. The ability to make a poem, to sing a Saga, to turn a neat compliment was considered an enviable attainment. The Saga of Gunnaar Serpent-tongued is an instance in point. Through his marked facility in writing poems and singing great songs he attains to great honour and riches in foreign countries, ma- king the mortal enemy, at whose hand he eventually died, at an exhibition of Bardic skill before one of the rulers of Norway. The following lines from one of the most ancient Runic poems illustrates well the renowned Islandic love of poetry, mentioning it as the last, the high- est, the crown of all the other attainments : I am master of nine accomplishments. I play well at chess. I know how to engrave Runic letters. I am apt at my book, and know how to handle the tools of a smith. I traverse the snow on skates of wood. I excel in shooting with a bow; I sing to the harp, and compose verses. 62 MANLINESS The I^I&.ndic World : M&.nline^./>. It would seem as if the most important moral lesson of that immense library of Sagas were Man- liness — one whose foundation is wisdom, and whose result is physical strength. So, in the touching Saga of the Vatnsdal, among the five sons of Ingmund, the wiser and manlier was Thorstein, who, in conse- quence, usually led his brethren. But he did not, on this account scorn taking the advice of his brethren on occasion, as he once did with signal success in the matter of the duel with the disturber of peace. It was in those days the universal custom that dur- ing his youth a man should travel, 'going on Viking' to acquire mannners, and develop prowess. No man was honoured who had not attained something de- finite in his own right : there were no inheritances, as each man's grave was filled with all his booty. We will understand the importance of Manliness in Northern eyes by noticing the multiplicity of Is- landic names for implements of war, and the pover- ty of its vocabulary in other respects. Moreover, the following lines from 'the Complaint of Harold' may give a hint of what Northern men most prized: I know how to perform eight exercises. I fight with courage. I keep a firm seat on horse-back. I am skilled in swimming. I glide along the ice on skates. I excel in darting the lance. I am dextrous at the oar. BOOK III *Ihe Spiritual Message gf Lyric Prophecy Prophetic Art 65 Book III. ^e Spiritual Message qf Lyric Prophecy Introduction. The title Prophetic Art was chosen to repre- sent this first known attempt at a scientific, system- atic statement of Natural Religion, or. Comparative Religion of Literature, or, a Digest of the Prophe- cy of the Poets and Seers of all times and races. Like any other science it had to begin with a defin- ition of terms, a gathering of facts, a classification of them, and the conclusion or deduction therefrom. The First Book, or Definition of Terms, gener- ally discussed and defined Prophecy, and what it is not, this contrast shedding a flood of light upon its real nature and limits. Incidentally, the definition of sanity (the apprehension of the relations of indi- vidual things to the universal Existent) implied that insanity rested on ignorance and provincialism — ex- plaining that Prophecy consisted of the sanifying universal elements in the song of a provincial poet. The Second Book, or Gathering of Facts, set forth the Sources of Prophetic Inspiration among the great prehistoric races of the world, each stand- ing for one or several moral attitudes, contributing its share to the eventually complete Moral Ideal of the human race. This is the Elements of Prophecy. 66 Prophetic Art The Third Book aims to systematize into a co- herent whole all legitimate prophetic elements with- out regard to time, race or creed; quoting, as far as possible, the very words of poets and prophets. For the time being, the writer has tried to forget his own views, logically sifting out the significance of the classified quotations of his systematic reading; that is, weaving a logical thread whereon to string the pearls of international literature, whose mighty and sublime chorus voices Consecration, Conservation, Attainment and Deification. The Fourth Book will point out the significance of the historic generalizations of prophecy, as em- bodied in parable, epic and drama. Writing these dramas of salvation chiefly for their local interests many of the earlier writers did not clearly realize the more universal soteriologlcal aspects of what they were putting together; naively they reset old legends, without much attempt at consistency. Lat- er writers, however, built their own plots more ac- curately to voice the message that inspired them. This is the form of literary enlightenment which promises most for the progress of mankind. Prophetic Art 67 Chapter I The Lyricdk.! A.rpir&tion: Con^ecrawtion. Prophecy incites humans to realize their divine possibilities. This is a glittering generality; what psychological fact does it represent ? A lyrical aspir- ation. The word aLtTpirawtion implies that as we are to-day, we are neither what we would and could and should be, nor what someday we shall be. There is a height far above even our highest height, a depth below our deepest depth; but though we feel it, we cannot yet grasp this infinite glory whose crown ho- vers high above our divinest desires. But why is this aspiration lyrical ? Because such is the expression of the emotional life by whose af- fections the Soul is driven up the Mount of Trans- figuration. Hindered by the heavy unperfected mask of the Personality, the travailing Soul cries passion- ately, distressedly, fitfully, lyrically. Long, steep and devious must yet the evolutionary upward path be before these fitful lyrical cries can become merged into the sustained mystery-discourses of the Arch- angel within. This is the soul-development that wc must follow through all its successive phases, to instruct souls as to where they are at, to encourage them to proceed further and more rapidly. Who could not be a Mes- siah, a Buddha, a Christ — all three names meaning in different languages. Anointed — if he but deserved it — and who may not ? Whosoever will ! 68 Prophetic Art I. PikJ'J'ion is the starting-point of life. Their first conscious self-assertion intoxicates body and mind with a joy, a glory, a dignity never known be- fore. Bayard Taylor's Bedouin calls the stars to at- test the greatness of his passion. It awakes in him the royal ring of Matthew Arnold's Tawny-throated nightingale — What triumph! hark! This is the starting-point of all song, all poetry. At least this is so for birds who, according to Darwin, sing best at pairing-time. This must also be so with man — else why are most songs of love ? This dig- nity of passion, this seal of manhood is Whitman's Of physiology from top to toe I sing. Have you ever loved the body of a man or of a woman ? Passion was Spenser's Castle Joyous, wherein abode the knights Gaudante, Parlante, Jocante and Bac- chante. It is the Strength of Jemshid, the Might of Ulysses^ of Arjuna, whereby they bend magic bows and are thereby recognized. The Homeric heroes eat flesh and drink wine; the bravest takes the larg- est share. The Russian hero drinks three buckets of green mead. Passion is The touch of Nature that makes the round world kin. Passion is the old rule of Masterfulness, to which romantic women did yield themselves with ecstasy. It is so glorious that even meagre and sad saint.' have thrown away their crown to grasp it, as Mer- lin for Vivien. It sanctifies might; hence there is no- thing diviner or juster than it. Prophetic Art 69 II. P&in. But for whom is Passion justice ? For the person himself, not for others; it destroys indi- viduality. So Mephistopheles sneers at Gretchen, She is not the first one ! All women act thus! So also all men. Passion ends in pain, as Adam and Eve also discovered in Eden. Passion is but something suiFered, after all! says Mrs Browning hinting of the Latin derivation. Every love-song is a cry of pain both in expectation and in fulfilment; each sacrament of passion is but the precursor of weariness and pain. The book of Proverbs is full of such statements as this : Her house is the way to hell, the chambers of death. The physician knows that this is literally true. All literature of all ages is full of it. Who does not understand the significance of Homer's Sirens ? Of Circe's bestializing delights ? It always leads to pain and death : the Fables of the Hitopadesa, Bid- pai, Aesop, the Parables of the Kingdom, the 'Pic- ture* of Kebes, Bunyan's 'Pilgrim's Progress' . . . Passion hinders a man from attaining fame in other fields. Well might Goethe's Helena bemoan her hJ:e of befooling men, in spite of herself; surely had she destroyed many heroes. The Northern Sa- gas called beautiful women the 'eaters of men', and the Greek poets, 'a terrible evil'. But it is not the feult of the rose if people think it beautiful ? Let the destroying hand beware the thorns ! yo Prophetic Art III. PainV Le^./'on, Ldk.w-&.bidin^-ne./'^. Pain, for a time at least, destroys the attractivenes? of, and capacity for Passion. It is the rudimentary silence of holiness which, as Mrs Browning says, is Calm with abdication. It is the nascent perception of the discrepancy be- tween the wishes of passion and the sober facts. Possession of the priceless Nibelungen Hort entail- ed death, and its power for mischief ended only on its being sunk into the Rhine. In the Inferno men were calmed only by the long silence. Swinburne's Atalanta pleads for toleration for her holy virginity in recognition of her voluntary abnegation of the licit joys of life. Pain's sadness of abdication sund- ers love from lust : the Angels are holy because The Loving in them is sublimed by the Sorrowfiil (Mrs Browning Here belongs the time honoured simile of gold be- ing purged of dross by the fire, which received its classical expression at the hands of the Persian Jami. Sorrow gives time for, and awakes Refledbion; Re- fledtion discovers and obeys the laws of Nature, physical and moral. Is not Pain the Banister of the World's great altar-stairs, sloping up to God. Pope's Essay on Man considers this at some length as also Mistral in his Mireio, 'The Saints'; Mered-i ith, 'Earth's Preference'; Joh. Ambrosius, 'Refuge*. But as Mrs Browning so well says in the 'Lay of the Brown Rosary', IV, what a pity that most men refuse Conformity to Law till fairly driven by Pain! Prophetic Art 71 This Le^^on of P&,in is what Paul meant by his famous antithesis between the Flesh and Spirit, which the satyr "Whitman, in 'A Backward Glance' deliberately attempts to confuse. Such hideous, un- blushing depravity is of course not chargeable to the thoughtless Greeks who were content with physical beauty and Reputation ; they stood pain as a mean- ingless evil, stoically. Paul however trumpeted its spiritual significance for soul-progress; that willing- ness to remain content with the flesh was sin; to fore- go an ideal or attainment, a crime. To him, possi- bilities were duties. The pleasure of passion is con- sequently the specific temptation of those who would become accepted of God, 'God-kissed.' It is so in all the dramas of salvation. In Faust, Calderon's Prodigious Magician, the Russian Power of Darkness, the 'Rilgrim's Rrogress', Prometheus Bound and Rrometheus Unbound, Faery Queen, the Shi King, Jusuf and Zuleika, and many more. Let it suffice to mention how Tennyson's Seekers for the Holy Grail found all temptations turn to dust; and Dante, lost in the forest, driven to enter Inferno by the three wild beasts of Rassions. Paul did not hesitate to contrast with the Spiritu- al the Natural, and to call it sin — for he had nailed the flag of divine realization and attainment to the mast of his life; according also to the words of Au- gustine of Hippo: Thou hast made us for Thyself; we are so made that we can never be at peace until we rest upon Thy Breast. 72 Brophetic Abt IV. Ration&.l Control of the Pa^^ion^ has manifold conseqences, epistemological as well as ethical ; only a few of them can be mentioned here. I The sub-rational only is incapable of expression in words. So-called dogmatic mysteries are only un- clearness of thought, nonsense, while clearness of thought invariably results in clear expression — had Hegel and Browning refrained from publishing their utterances till they had made it quite clear to them- selves what they intended, there seems to have been no reason why even they, sincerely blinded as they seem to have been by their colossal self-conceit (co- lossal enough to be entirely unconscious), should not have come to realize that their obscurity was, instead of profundity, the well-meaning, ursine im- maturity every young writer has had to pass thro', and leave behind. Had they subjected their well- meant, glorious, yet sub-rational dreams to their own commonsense, there seems to be no doubt that they might, after prolonged self-discipline, have at- tained to write as simply, as lucidly as Matthew Ar- nold or Herbert Spencer, who have demonstrated that this process of r&tionaliz&.tion is consistent with, nay, indispensable to the utmost beauty and profundity. Another instance in point is the Church which leaves Reason a free hand in defending, but not in questioning doctrine; whereas if Faith is not to be irrational, it should limit itself to domains be- yond demonstration, to the moral progress in life. Prophetic Art 73 True faith is not assent to dodtrine or historical ♦adt, which is opinion ; and persistence in it is not heroism, but a matter of research or refledtion. Faith is the carrying out in practice of ideals and visions in spite of such weakness of the flesh as the Apos- tles displayed by sleeping in Gethsemane. The ob- ject is to make this fitful higher life the permanent normal self — such as Browning tells of Paracelsus, But this was born in me. I was made so; thus much time saved. Here the sub-rational element is reduced to a nor- mally subordinate position ; in this silence I hear no yelp of the beast, and the Man is quiet at last As he stands on the heights of his life With a glimpse of heights that are higher. (Tennyson The Greek word for sin 'missing the mark' well ex- presses the inevitable result of the 'blind' affections slipping the leash of the reason — what crime in the calendar was not attempted to be excused on such ground ? Love, uncontrolled, is but lust — and sin. Well did Molinos observe that none could hope to hear the Still Small Voice except in the three Silen- ces of speech, desire and thought. The Shi King's ideal is to shun caprices, to curb cravings, to bridle the affections. The Bhag'vadh Gita's message is To practice self-denial, mildness, duty — This is to free oneself from the barriers of the flesh. So Swinburne sublimely sings in his 'Atalanta': Of whom be thou, o Son, happiest, if thou submit thy soul to fate And set thine eyes and heart on hopes high-born And divine deeds, and abstinence divine. 74 Prophetic Art V. Purity cf He&rt results from the purity of mind and of body which flows from Rationalization It is the dawning consciousness of the Spiritual, when the soul turns away in disgust ftom all even licit earthly pleasure, as Gautama the Buddha who made the Great Renunciation to become a Saviour. Jesus the Christ too was a Virgin. Whittier says, And through her life of sense, the Undefiled and Chaste Ideal of The Sinless One gazed on her with an eye she might not shun — This Ideal gazes on the growing soul throughout all literature. Spencer limns his Britomart, his Knights of Maidenhead, and his Una, whom naught could harm, whom lions served, all because of her chastity. In the Niebelungen Lied the Ideal appears as Brun- hild, whose magic strength lasts only as long as her Virginity, till Siegfried, rendered invisible by the Tarnkappe, deprives her of her virgin zone; then Was she as weak as any other Woman. This Ideal looks down upon the World through My good blade carves the casques of men, my lance thrusteth sure My Strength is as the strength of ten. Because my heart is pure. So Tennyson's Galahad; Malory's Morte Arthur : The Candle with the Bridle: they betoken Virginity; the Bridle, Abstinence; the Candle, the Holy Ghost, the Light of God. The Egyptian who would get through the Hall of Judgment had to satisfy the scrutiny of the Judge named 'Discriminator of Purity'. In the Mahabha- rata, Narada the Scribe was Teacher of this; while in the Mussulman Paradise the Houris ever re- mained Virgins. Prophetic Art 75 An end in itself Virginity is not. Its justification lies wholly in its experiential results; it gradually clears up the spiritual vision just as certainly as in- dulgence dims it. Jami tells us that the Cock would be prophesying dawn before the Gates of Paradise but for his foolish lust. An Ainu legend explains on much the same grounds his inability to fly. Hesiod insists that the hands must be washed in innocency before the Gods will hear any prayer. How well M. Arnold sets forth the austerity of the Muse : the gaudily dressed Italian Poet wore next to his skin a shirt of hair. We can but refer to Milton's long ho- milies on the subject in his Comus. Tennyson says that in the Quest for the Holy Grail Gawain and the other knights saw nothing ; but the Pure saw According to their sight. So Rossetti sings of Mary, the Angel-watered Lily, that near God grows, and is quiet. Whiter than snow Is the virtue of the Lettisch or- phan prophetess. It is explicitly stated in the Hindu Epic that Savitri's early chastity was her influence with the Gods. And Puschkin prays to the Spirit of Humility, Love, Chastity and Patience. How did Bayard Taylor ever guess the secret ? A virgin hand must tend the vine. By virgin feet the vat be trod Whose consecrated gush of wine becomes the blessed blood of God Holy was Melchizedek the priest-king of Salem, and Moses, whose explicit laws about purification are unmistakable, wist not that the skin of his face shone after having been forty days with God. 76 Prophetic Art VI. Impd^rti&l Love. Passionate affection and hate are but a very short step apart — circumstances. Till hate is killed, till the soul is incapable of it, is passion yet the 'predominant partner'. So Lowell: That love for one, from which there does not spring Wide love for all, is but a worthless thing. It really not love at all, but "egoisme a deux". With passion calmed the Reason is enabled to weigh the feelings and claims of others. 'Thought- fulness' is Justice, against oneself, if necessary. To forgive is man's divinest prerogative. Shelley writes: I hate no more, as then ere misery made me wise. Who overcomes by force, hath overcome but half his foe. Milton. Whittier: He who all things forgives Conquers himself and all things else, and lives Above the reach of wrong, or hate, or fear. Calm as the Gods, to whom he is most dear. Whittier, Johanna Ambrosius, Rueckert, Ada Negri all insist on the folly of hate between souls who must all of them pass away so soon. Who has made himslf incapable of hating any man, naturally progresses to inability of hating any thing. Which of the ancient nations considered not their frontier as the boundaries of Humanity, be- yond which dwell only Gentiles, Barbarians, Foreign Devils. Of course, Ignorance is accountable for much of this insularity; but not all. Rightly does the inn-keeper's daughter in the German song say to the contending patriots, raising her hand to sky.. Ye may no more contend:There above, there lies the happiest land Prophetic Art 77 Co^mopoIitak.nism is better than Nationalism; but best of all is Patriotism for Heaven. Malachi asks. Have we not all one Father ? Rueckert, in his sublime Advent-Hymn, demands That we return to dwell as Brethren in our Great Father's House Surely Emil Frida is right: Now only begins to dawn th' Appointed Time, Now for the first time are revealed true Goodness,Beauty,Strength The Bonds of Brotherhood arise above the Powers of Hate. The time shall yet be when men shall rise above The passions of the Primal Clan. (Tennyson. Well may Browning's Paracelsus have vowed Himself to Man, not Men Scheffler better known as Angelus Silesius declares I love, but love not Men. Ye ask. What lovest thou then ? It is Humanity alone I love in Men. Loving Humanity, and studying Universal His- tory and Literature, the rudimentary ideals of Tribe Clan and Nation gradually pass away. The World then becomes but one great School of God, an Inn, a Caravanserai, in which, as a shelter, we may abide for a period, only to pass to higher heights. This is the famous Persian insight repeated so oft in the Shah Nahmeh, Omar Khayyam and the most of modern imitated Persian poems. Hugo's paraphrase Let us be like a bird, a moment lighted upon a twig that swings; He feels its sway, but sings on unaffi-ighted. Knowing he hath his wings. This is the Christian setting of the same thought : These all died in faith not having received the promises, but hav- ing seen them afar off, and were persuaded of them, and embraced them, and confessed that they were strangers and pilgrims on earth. 78 Prophetic Art VII. Idol&tf^'' consists in love for a human be- ing of the opposite sex much greater than the same person's love for God ; it destroys Cosmopolitanism at its very roots, as it is the lover's interest to keep social conditions stable, nor has he leisure for re- forms. The following references will justify the cha- racterization of such love as idolatrous. Was not this the sin of Tennyson's Launcelot, in whom all that was noble and knightly clung so that the Grail was hidden from his sight, when he had almost at- tained it ? How many lovers have not scrupled to worship their beloved, and to address them as their God ! So Vivien the lissome, and Vincen the lover of Mireio. To give one's whole soul to a man, as Betty Paoli did, is not that too much. So Ali Mirza says of his dead wife. There lies all my wealth — ^no hope for me Although the Gates of Salvation stand ajar. Ada Negri is right — as the lover kissed his belo- ved, a light on the altar went out. The most reprehensible of all, because the most enlightened, are Robert and Elizabeth Browning ; And I, who only looked for God, found thee 1 cries she, after having written the most exclusive de- votional poem ; and Robert, in his very last book, Asolando, deHberately declaring that the whole truth of the Universe lay in the kiss of one girl, and con- sidering that love greatest which depends on another human being for salvation, even though accompan- ied by utter immorality. Incredible 1 Prophetic Art 70 Is all this mere rhetoric ? If so, how account for the plain fact that it rises unanimously from every nation and age ? The feeling of flesh for flesh — into which Idolatry resolves itself, is just vulgar passion. Not till the soul loves God first, last, and wholly, and human beings only so far as may be consistent with that love, not till then has its yearnings become transmuted from lust into love. This idolatry of lo- ving a person as God, and Him secondarily, shall be punisned with — or let us say simply, results in death, inasmuch as all human ties must, sooner or later, be broken. He who places his whole salvation on them must consequently be mulcted of it, ulti- mately. The Universe is simply not built that way. The right kind of love need not however be any the less extreme or afFedling than the wrong kind. Edwin Arnold has blessed the English peoples by translating from the Mahabharata the story of how Yudhisthira refuses to enter into heaven until his brothers and his wife and his dog shall enter too. Hearing that they have been temporarily carried in- to Hell, he scorns to enter the open Blessed Gates, descends into Hell, and by his presence there tem- porarily lightens the suffering of the damned. And until the conditions he has set have been fulfilled, he refuses to stir even though the whole Circle of Divinities from Indra's Heaven come to fetch him. This story has lately been revived by Rossetti in his 'Blessed Damozel', and by Mr W. Smith in his 'Silent Angels'. 8o Prophetic Art VIII. Devotion to God. But if the only true love be for God, must men not love each other at all ? It is right they should; but only "in God", sub- ject to the love of God, to truth, to virtue, to guid- ance of the Spirit, to faithfulness to the highest self. No other union of souls can be permanent, here or beyond. How sublimely Sar Peladan puts this : I have never loved the woman that you are; I love through you a splendid Ideal; and I use every effort to incarnate it in your body. A man may hold none above a woman, always ex- cepting God and 'the King' — did not Lovelace say: 1 could not love thee half so well, loved I not honour more. Keats speaks of a 'fellowship divine'; and Tennyson finds his friend in God 'worthier to be loved'; hence Alighieri says, that God 'increases our loves'. Spen- ser's 'Hymn of Heavenly Love' is a classIc;Words- worth's Skylark is True to the kindred points of Heaven and Home To reach this divine union of souls we must oft- en go through sorrows. In mercy God sometimes Breaks down our love for One, to draw it out to all Humanity, sings Prince Schoenaich-Carolath ; Mrs Browning : God keeps a niche in Heaven to hold our idols; and albeit He brake them to our faces, and denied that our close kisses Should impair their white, I know we shall behold th .m Raised complete, the dust swept from their beauty, — Glorified, new Memnons singing in the great God-light. This divine soul-union is premonitory of a union diviner still, to which vertiginous height of placing the whole of one's affedlions on God only, but few souls ever reach ; blessed indeed are they, albeit sad Can I suffice for Heaven, but not for Earth f (Mrs Browning. Prophetic Art 8i This is the Shi-king's 'Hfe-long, perpetual vow' to be worked out in the cabin on the mountain-side. So was Moses lonely, so was Elijah forsaken — but not by God, who alone stays near till the end. He seeks at least upon the last and sharpest height Before the spirits fade away, some landing-place. To clasp and say. Farewell, we lose ourselves in light. This is the lesson of Rueckert's Narcissus-flower : I look to the light, do thou look to the Lord. Console thyself of thy loneliness, not of her departure. Trust me keep thy love in the mystic state; make radiant light out of it. says Peladan. So Gushtasp and Lohurasp gave up the world, and retired into the desert, as countless saints have done since their time. But, as Whittier's 'Vaudois Teacher' why was this Spiritual strength, better offered up to Heaven (Tennyson not given in the beautiful hour of youth, not mere- ly as a last resort. So Rossetti's Mary Magdalene : He needs me, calls me, loves me — let me go, cries she to her still pressing earthly lovers. Gerok sings. It is well for you that I depart. Mrs Browning Beat purer, heart, and higher, till God unsex thee on the heavenly shore, where the unincarnate spirits purely aspire . . . and 'are as the angels in heaven'? Is it not this sort of love which must have animated the knights who forsook all things for 'the Quest'? Where this blessed Renunciation has been made, there the desire of the heart is wholly set on God, as the eye of the eagle is set full on the sun. There is no need of words. The silent desire of this divine communion is sufficient unto itself: 82 Prophetic Art Serene, clad in great glory, potent, wonderful. They glide at will, at will they know and see; At wish their wills are wrought — for these are pure. Passionless, hallowed, perfect, free of earth. (Edwin Arnold. Both Shelley and Matthew Arnold realize that we Grow like what I contemplate To become what we sing. Therefore the result of the Silent Desire, which is Holmes' 'best prayer', of the Beatific Vision is to be deified, as even Athanasius did not scruple to as- sert. So Beatrice rose heavenward by merely looking at the Sun. Khai Khosrau explains this 'gazing': My love of Heaven is so great that I cannot exist one moment without devotion and prayer. This explains the how and why of the reports of the Assumptions into Heaven of Enoch, Elijah, Jesus, Mary, Khai Khosrau, Apollonius of Tyana, and many more. This knowledge is not as through a glass darkly, but face to face — an eternal Plotinic Extasy at close touch with that Love that Moves the Sun and the other Stars. O'er Thee undimned the moon-girt planets shine. On Thy majestic altar fade the fires That filled the air with smoke of vain desires. And all th'unclouded blue of Heaven is Thine. Is it any wonder that with such a Divine Lover (as the Persians love to call Him) Whittler cries Forgive me, if too close I lean my human heart on Thee. Thus may even we dare to answer God's Voice, as a child may say Amen to a Bishop's prayer, and Feel the way it goes. Every inmost aspiration is God's Angel undefiled. And in every 'O my Father' slumbers deep a 'Here, my Child*, Prophetic Art 83 Chapter II Hum&n Potentidt.litie.r : Conservation. The very word 'Potentialities' implies a glory to be revealed, a perfection to be, as Dante would say, transhumanated, a logos or divine thought to be in- carnated in the womb of a virgin life. It brings glad light into weary eyes, for is it not the Good News, the God-spell or Gospel, the Evangel of Humanity the Faith that this lite is not a hopeless tangle me- rely, but a promise, though veiled. Even if we have permitted our own lives to be hopelessly enmeshed, we still long to hear of a crown destined for some human forehead. That Man can Attain is the Gos- pel of the Altar dedicated to the Unknown God. But What may Man Attain r This has^ as yet, been only in part, revealed. This is the riddle of the Sphinx. Did we know it, there would be still a Fur- ther Unknown. Perhaps, therefore, it is just as well we can dream only of the best we know, of Con- structive Methods, of Hygiene, of Work, of Cha- rader, of Responsibility, of the Urgency of Life, of Ideals, of the Hoped-for Beatific Consummation. Duties as these are, for the most part, they still are Potentialities only for the greater portions of Humanity; at least, we do know they are Potentia- lities for every soul ; and they are the only means that we know of by which the Divine Vision might be attained — trusting in the promise Blessed are they which do hunger and thirst after Righteousness, for they shall be filled. 84 Prophetic Art I. Con./'tructivisni. The Hindu Trinity, Brah- ma, Siva and Vishnu, Creator, Destroyer, Preserver^ sets forth high spiritual truth. By instindb, man is a Creator. How shall he accomplish his mission ? In youth he is a Sivaist ; he will destroy the old. But as his energy spends itslf, he becomes a Vishnuvist, seeking to preserve all that is good. Is not this atti- tude divine ? 'God' is 'good' — and this means 'use- ful': increasing, not decreasing the sum-total of life. God patiently looks on at the world, and wherever He sees that some utility may be subserved, there He acts. Destruction is the work of but low Intelli- gence, of brutal passion, incarnate or unincarnate. To avoid Destruction, to increase the stock of hu- man learning, health, wealth, strength, beauty, virtue and Holiness, that is the occupation of the Great White Angel, and His younger brethren. And if a man be god-like, he must likewise act for greater good, for utility to others, as well as to himself. But the highest utility is spiritual ; and the man who is a utilitarian would be able to sell all that he had, give it to the poor, and follow the Great White An- gel Himself. In this sense the Lord of the Field permits the wheat and the tares to grow together till the harvest lest the least stalk of wheat be injured. For A bruised reed shall he not break, and smoking flax shall he not quench, till he send forth judgment unto victory. One of the Elohim (Holy Ones) welcomed the Prophetic Art 85 people who came to him for Instruction with posi- tive blessings, instead of negative curses. Blessed are the pure in heart, for they shall see God. If Jonah have pity on a gourd, will God not have pity on six-score thousand of his own children who do not know their left. Surely the woman taken in adultery will be told to go in peace, but to sin no more. This is the attitude of the nobler prophecy : And it shall come to pass that like as I have watched over them to pluck up and to break down, and to throw down and to afflift, so will I watch over them to build and to plant, saith the Lord. Holmes strikes the key-note in full diapason : They told of cities that should fall in heaps. But yours of mightier cities that shall rise. And Whittier sings of the Golden Age, whose light is of the Dawn and not of Sunset, Forward, not Behind, Flood the new Heavens and Earth; And with thee bring all the old Virtues, whatsoever things Are pure and honest, and of good repute, but add thereto Whatever bard has sung, or seer has told of them In trance and dream; they saw the happy Isles of Prophecy. And why should not this affirmative position be the divine one, when Mephistopheles is 'the spirit who negatives everything' ? 'Thus saith the Lord, Break every yoke, undo the heavy burden', but not in ven- geance on the oppressor, but in mercy to the op- pressed. Shelley was never able to raise himself ful- ly above his righteous wrath against the oppressor; in his splendid Cythna and Laon, and even in his Prometheus Unbound. It is Whittier who says. Hold fast your Puritan heritage,but let the free thought of the Age Its light and sweetness add to the stern faith the Fathers had. 86 Prophetic Art A bending staff I would not break, a feeble faith 1 would not shake Nor even rashly pluck away the error which some truth may stay Whose loss might leave the soul without a shield against . . doubt. No danger that such goodness lead to weakness : Not less shall manly deed and word rebuke an age of wrong. The Good Shepherd left the ninety and nine safe sheep in the fold, to search for the strayed wanderer and put her on his shoulder. And Nizami recounts the beautiful legend of Jesus finding on his road the carcase of a dog. While all were filled with disgust, and passed by on the other side, he alone regarded it tenderly, admiring the white teeth. He at least is able to find beauty everywhere. So says Milton that So little knows any but God alone to value right the good before him, but perverts the best things to worst abuse, or to their mean- est use. The right kind of Progress has best been expres- sed by Matthew Arnold in his sublime poem on it: Scorn ye this world, their tears, their inward cares ? I say unto you, see that your souls live a deeper life than theirs. Say ye, the spirit of man has found new roads. And we must leave the old faiths, and walk therein f Leave then the Cross as ye have left carved gods. But guard the fire within. Children of men ! the Unseen Power whose eye Forever doth accompany Mankind, Hath looked on no religion scornfully that man did ever find. But that ye think clear, feel deep, bear fruit well. The Friend of Man desires. Holmes cries out, 'Our duty is to save !' to become Mothers of Souls, Saviours, Buddas, Christs, Gods ! Prophetic Art 87 II. Discipline. 'How I wish I had not won in such a contest !' cried Ulysses when, in Hades, he saw Ajax, whom he had driven to suicide. Well might he say so, for the Gods exacted from him full retribution. This fatality is expressed by Khayyam : The Moving Finger writes; and having writ Moves on; nor all your piety and wit Shall move it back to cancel half a Line: Nor all your tears wash out a word of it. *A11 hope abandon, ye who enter here' is writ over the Gate to the place where past actions are reward- ed, for better or worse. The Past is dead. Sobered by realization of this, men will try to make the most possible of the remaining Future by Self-discipline. He makes himself no illusions, but thinks of Consequences, as Jelluladin advises. And Matthew Arnold puts this well in his 'Immortality'. To subdue Fate by intelligent management is the lesson of the 'Prometheus Bound' and of the Hito- padesa. It is Tennyson's rising on stepping-stones of our dead selves. Milton, Arnold, Tegner, Long- fellow, Whittier — all have memorable words : What though the field be lost? All is not lost! Unconquerable will. Consults what best may render Hell more tolerable. Rally the good in the depths of thyself. Because thou must not dream, thou need'st not then despair. Nor deem th' irrevocable Past as wholly wasted, wholly vain. If, rising on its wrecks at last to something nobler we attain. None knows when th' Master calls into the Sea of Death — Assemble none but Spirits Good around thy dwelling-place. Before the Ender comes whose charioteer is swift or slow disease. Lay up each year thy harvest of well-doing — none can take away. 88 Prophetic Art Build thee more stately mansions, O my soul. As the swift seasons roll. Leave thy low-vaulted past ! Let each new temple, nobler than the last Shut thee from Heaven with a dome more vast. Till thou at length art free. Leaving thine out-grown shell by life'sunresting sea. But it is not sufficient to intend fruitfulness: there is need of dogged determination to live : (Mrs Browning) We'll live, Aurora, we'll be strong; The dogs are on us, but we will not die. The maxim 'Let us eat and drink, for to-morrow we die' is not as reprehensible as Paul made it appear. It is the characteristic of the Greeks, and of Omar Khayyam; and involves the entirely laudable elem- ent of foresight, which indeed even the holy Jesus recommended to the pradice of spiritual people in his parable of the Unjust Steward. Only, instead of 'let us eat and drink' let us say, 'let us pray and fast and make spiritual development, that we be not de- prived of it by any mischance, or shortness of life.' For to-morrow Is with God ; at any rate out of our knowledge — beyond assurance that we will be able to act for the better part. The experience of ages and races has demonstrated the wisdom of discern- ing 'adtuallties', as the French say. Proverbs are nu merous; for instance : A bird in the hand Is worth two in the bush. Browning puts it well: Would a man ' scape the rod ? Rabbi Ben Karshook saith. See that he turn to God the day before his death. Aye, could a man inquire when it shall come, I say. The Rabbi's eye shook fire — Then let him turn to-day. Prophetic Art 89 III. Lak.bour. The third opportunity every man possesses within his grasp, if he will only make use of it, is Work. This Gospel was taught by Carlyle. Work, act, be busy: do something, whatever it be. Work spiritually; if not that, mentally; if neither willing nor able for this, then sweep, cook, sew — it matters not what, so you be not inactive. This was the Gospel of Hesiod, in the dawn of Greece : Labor increases thy worth in the sight of the eternal Gods; Labor is no disgrace, but laziness brings thee disgrace; Soon as thou servest Labor, the laggard straightway will envy thee Because of thy great wealth; and Virtue follows, and Honour. Such also, in the sight of Goethe's Divinity (in the Faust) is the use of the Devil : Human activity flags only too quickly; soon does man long for ease-full rest. Hence I gladly give him that Companion who ex- cites, and works, and who, as Devil, is forced to labor ceaselessly. Martin thinks that every man takes the line of least resistance. It is against such a view that the Gospel of work is directed. The frequently seen he- roism of doing a little more work than may be re- quired belies it, as statement of the fadts of human nature, which are far more accurately represented in Browning's last words : Strive and thrive, speed, fight on, fare ever, there as here. Vrchlicky (Emil Frida) utters a new and divine note when he heralds the Era of Work — down with the prison, with the sin and the guilt, and the slavery — long life to Free Humanity, freed by Thought and serious labour. It is only for idle hands that the De- vil can find work to do : emotion, passion, crime. 90 Prophetic Art But Labor is of specific value for more than mere correction of Passion, such as that to which Adam was condemned, not so much as a vengeance, as a wise and tender leading into such paths as would naturally redeem him to his better self, though ar- duous and unattradlive. Labor implies Effort ; and Effort is the very marrow of Morality, which con- sists of Adlion and Habit. A spiritual state which could be had without Effort were a Fool's Paradise, Magic, a Cheat, that in the end would cost dearly. Nothing illustrates this better than Matthew Ar- nold's poem 'Morality', in which the Earth admires Man for his 'severe', 'earnest' air, which is foreign to her, who rushes with the swift spheres in joy, and •sleeps when she will. Yet she remembers it dimly: 'Twas when the heavn'ly house I trod, lay on the breast of God. Gcethe's Easter Angels save Faust by this thought: Christ has arisen from the lap of decay; joyfully tear yourself loose from your bands. To you who aftively praise him; who by deeds prove your love to him; who share each others' needs; who preach and travel, promising salvation; to you is he present, to you alone is he near. This strenuousness is the key-note of Meredith : Our song and star are they to lead the tidal multitude and blind From bestial to the higher breed by fighting souls of love divined. They scorned the ventral dream of peace unknown in nature; (for Life begets with fair increase beyond the flesh, if life be true. "Where Life is at her grind-stone set, that she may give us edg- ing keen." "Behold the life at ease: It drifts. The sharpened life commands its course. ""Strength is of the plain root-virtues born; Strength ye shall gain by service, prove in scorn. Train by endur- ance, by Devotion shape. Strength is not won by miracle or rape. Prophetic Art 91 We will confine ourselves to but a few quotations from our English classics : But strength of mind is Exercise, not Rest; The rising tempest puts in act the soul. Parts it may ravage, but preserves the whole. (P°P^ Long is the way. And hard, that out of Hell leads up to light. Free men freely work. Whoever fears God, fears to sit at ease. What height we know not, but the way we know. And how, by mounting ever, we attain, and so climb on. So Milton and Mrs Browning; the American poets: Awake! arise! the athlete's arm loses its strength by too much rest; The fallow land, the untilled farm produces only weeds at best. Thus at the flaming forge of life our fortunes must be wrought; Thus on its sounding anvil shaped eaeh burning deed and thought. Better to stem with heart and hand the roaring tide of life than lie Unmindful, on its flowery strand of God's occasions drifting by; Better with naked nerve to bear the needles of this goading air. Than in the lap of sensual ease, forego the godlike power to do. The godlike aim to know. Of the foreign writings none is more apt than the Hitopadesa: As the chariot will not move upon a single wheel; even so Fate succeedeth not without human exertion. So in their Heft-khans Rustem and Isfendiyar come to a place where, to reach their Goal, they prefer to a safe road which takes six months, the seven-days' road beset by unconquerable demons. So Geijer : To the Hall of the Gods lead many roads. But courage chooses the shorter. What stone would in the house be built must first be trimmed. So Rueckert, while A.K.Tolstoi cries with fervour. Row, my Brothers, till you make a current go up-stream; Seek strength in faith; we must succeed and reach the saving shore 92 Prophetic Art IV. Chdj:&.cter. The diredt result of disciplin- ed labour (which forms Culture) is Charader, the new second nature, so that man acts only from some incarnated principle, and can be depended upon to act in certain moral manners under given conditions. The first aspedt of Character is Self-Dependence. Immortalized by Emerson, it is best expressed by Whitman: Sit awhile, dear Son, here are biscuits to eat, here is milk to drink; but as soon as you sleep and renew yourself, I kiss you with a good-bye kiss and open the gates for your egress hence I am the teacher of athletes; He most honours my style who under it learns to destroy the teacher. Self-Dependence forces man to use his own dis- crimination and reason, which together constitute Conscience, best expressed by Rueckert, Supposing then thou hadst by arts the Judges won for thee. What use so long as thou canst not thyself from guilt acquit? 'Tis man's perdition to be safe when for the truth he ought to die. So nigh is grandeur to the dust, so near to God is man. When Duty whispers low. Thou Must, the youth replies, I Can. Conscience in action is called Virtue. Set all thy faith on Virtue; no enemy can rob that jewel; Nor flood nor flame consume it; lo. Chance rules all other thingi. So sings Kochanowsky; while Goethe says. Who would possess what he inherits must deserve it. Pope asks the pertinent question. But sometimes Virtue starves while Vice is fed — What then ? Is the reward of Virtue, Bread ? Virtue's Reputation is beyond price. So Hiranyika, caught in a trap, cries out to the Mouse who tries to deliver him first before the others whom he had un- wittingly led also into the trap, (in the Hitopadesa) Why dost thou hesitate over this perishable body composed but of flesh, bones and excrements ? O friend, support my reputation! Prophetic Art g2 V. Reyponyibility is the next step in human development. Vrchhcky expresses this transition: I believe that when the grave's white vault shall oe'r me arch, I'll find that all my unfulfilled ideals of joy, and love unrealized Again will have receded into future times so very far, so far. Labour alone abode with me, a light-house bright That shone for me in life's dark night, and o'er the wave. And with power divine shone far, so far. Drifting on tides of emotions is not freedom; it is the most fatalistic determination, and includes guilt for not having rowed upstream, which had yet been a possibility, latent within him. Homer' s god says, Alas, how forsooth do mortals reproach the Gods! For they say that their evils are from us, whereas they themselves through their own infatuation suffer griefs beyond what is destined.. Fortune attendeth the lion among men who exerteth himself. They are but weak men who declare fate the only cause. So the Hitopadesa. Longfellow nobly cries. Awake, arise, the hour is late. Angels are knocking at thy door; They are in haste, and cannot wait — departed, come no more. But how to reconcile Responsibility with scienti- fic Determinism ? The wisest can but give hints. Nay, but faint not, idly sighing Destiny is mightiest; Sesamum holds oil in plenty, but it yieldeth none unpressed. It is said that Fate is nothing but deeds committed in a former state of existence; wherefore it behoveth a man vigilantly to exert the powers he is possessed of. So the Hitopadesa; Longfellow also is suggestive : The Gods implore not, plead not, solicit not; they only Offer Choice and Occasion which, being passed, return no more. Milton's is a happy statement of the difficulty: That thou art happy, owe to God; that thou continuest such, owe to thyself. 94 Prophetic Art The problem of Responsibility, or rather its cru- cial Importance is well stated by Mrs Browning : Not even Christ himself can save Man else than he holds his soul. No force divine can human love compel. The sweet persuasion of His voice respects the sanftity of will. A most instrudlive study of the question is the Biblical story of Balaam, to whom was granted free- dom of choice in the matter of following the mes- sengers of Balak. He enquired of the Lord, who advised him against following them. But when re- wards persuaded him to go, he found the road open to him. Even though the Angels of the Lord gave him while on the road a warning in an unmistakable manner, yet was he permitted to go on. But even at the last moment God inspired him with words op- posite to those Balak desired of him. But here Ba- laam balked; he would not disobey God point-blank so that he blessed Israel. Nevertheless the natural result of his skirting so close to the zone of disobe- dience was his being killed together with Balak. Whittier has well represented all this : I walked by my own light; but when the ways of faith divided Was I to force unwilling feet to tread the path that I did? I touched the garment-hem of truth, yet saw not all its splendor. I knew enough of doubt to feel for every conscience tender. God left men free of choice as when his Eden -trees were planted; Because they chose amiss should I deny the gift he granted- ? This sketch of Responsibility would not be ade- quate without a mention of the Choice of Hercules or, the Two Ways — a moral lesson that haunted an- tiquity, and found its way even into Christianity. Prophetic Art 95 VI. Strange, is it not, that rational humans so easily deceive themselves into forgetfulness of the historical records of Fdtilure ? Under the imbecile pretext of cheerfulness or immoral plea of vicarious Love, men are persuaded into the fool's paradise that they will be saved in their sins, instead of from them, and that all is well, whether they fail or not. How much more manly is it not to look the facts in the face ; to realize that, arguing from the analogy of history the overwhelming probability lies on the side of failure for the majority, among which we doubt- less are; that success is indeed possible, but only to the most desperate endeavours ! Were it not that Christians are those who least realize the significance of the unvarnished words of their own Master, would they not agree to this, and indeed be remind- ing us that it was their own Jesus who is reported to have said Many are called, but few are chosen. Narrow is the way, and straight is the gate. And few there be that find it- Of course, mere gloating over failure were evil ; but worse, far worse is Whitman's thoughtless, glad welcome of misfortune and death, with never an in- spiration for the present higher life drawn from it, a useful lesson for the present life. How true is the story of the place called Bochim or Vale of Tears where the Angel of the Lord met the Children of Israel to announce to them that be- cause they had not obeyed the Lord in driving out g6 Prophetic Art the enemy the latter should remain permanently, a thorn in their side. Again, when the spies had re- turned from investigating the Promised Land, the people refused to go up ; but next day, when they wanted to go up, the Lord forbad. Later, again, the Lord was angry with the Children of Israel, wished to destroy them and offered to raise up a new nation from the loins of Moses, who refused; they did not know how near they had been to destruction. The Foolish Virgins — was any place of repentance left for them ? Nay, not even though, like Esau, they sought it carefully with tears. Paul cries out. Know ye not that they which run in a race run all, but one re- ceiveth the prize? So run, that ye may obtain. I therefore so run, not as uncertainly; so fight I, not as one that beateth the air. But I keep under my body, and bring it into sub- jeftion; lest that by any means, when I have preached to others, I myself should be a cast-away. Sad, but beautiful and true is the 'RhcEcus' of Lowell. He had had the privilege of access to a Spirit of beauty and joy. But he sinned. The night had gathered around him; o'er the plain The city sparkled with its thousand lights. And sounds of revel fell upon his ear Harshly and like a curse; above, the sky With all its bright sublimity of stars Deepened, and on his forehead smote the breeze: Beauty was all around him, and delight — But from that eve he was alone on earth . . . "Alas", the Voice replied, " 'tis thou art blind. Not I unmerciful ; I can forgive. But have no skill to heal thy spirit's eyes; Only the soul hath power o'er itself" With that again there murmured, "Nevermore." Prophetic Art 97 VII. Who makes the right use of Failure will a<5tually praftise his IdeS^l^. So Bayard Taylor : Give Me thy trust : My child thou art, and I will lead thee Through the years to Hopes and Passions, Loves and Fears, till Following up Life's endless plan a strong and self-dependent Man I see thee stand and strive with men; thy Father now thy Brother then. The greatest sin is to have a low Ideal, Bagvad-gita: Among thousands of men scarce one striveth for Perfeftion; Of the successful Strivers scarce one knoweth Me in essence. Meredith saw Colossal on enormous mound. Majestic Gods we saw confer. And Emerson beheld the gigantic Lords of Life; Little Man, . . never mind; the founder thou, thy race are these. Matthew Arnold is not far from the truth : Know, Man hath all that Nature hath, and more. And in that More lie all his hopes of good. Nature and Man can never be close friends; Fool, if thou canst not pass her, rest her slave. The Persian Ibn Jemim tells of the 'Woman of the World' who is still virgin since eternity because not a single one of her numberless suitors had proved himself a Man; not one had aftualized the Ideal of attaining her perfection, Tennyson exhorts to Follow the star that lights the desert pathway, yours or mine; Forward till you see the highest Human Nature is divine. Meredith puts it quaintly : More gardens will they win than any lost ; The vile plucked out of them, the unlovely slain; Not forfeiting the beast with which they are crossed. To stature of the Gods will they attain. They shall uplift the Earth to meet her Lord, Themselves the attuning chord. 9? Prophetic Art It were strange If Mrs Browning taught not Ideals: It takes a soul to move a body; it takes a high-souled man to move The masses, even to a cleaner style. It takes the Ideal To blow a hair's breadth oiF the dust of the actual. Your Fouriers failed because not poets enough to understand That life develops from within. What height we know not. But the way we know, and how by mounting ever we attain. Not without deep emotion is it possible to read of the New Jerusalem whsre there shall be no night nor any tears, and wherein dwells forevermore the beauty of the Lord Himself. The Twelve Gates shall bar out the unclean dogs; only the pure may enter in. Yet even these glories belong to the Past. May not the future hold in store some vision nobler yet? Perhaps there lives some dreamy boy untaught In schools, some graduate of the field or street. Who shall become a master of the art. An admiral sailing the high seas of thought. Fearless and first, and steering with his fleet For lands not yet laid down in any chart. So prophesies Longfellow, and Holmes fulfils it so; My life shall be a challenge, not a truce! This is my homage to the mightier powers. To ask my boldest question undismayed. By muttered threats that some hysteric sense Of wrong or insult will convulse the throne Where Wisdom reigns supreme. And this wisdom, what is it? God, God, God ! That God which ever lives and loves One God, one Law, one Element And one far off divine Event Toward which the whole Creation moves. That God may be all in all. Prophetic Art 99 Chapter III The Higher P&.nthei^m ; Att&.inment. I. God's Imm&.nence in the World is the sub- limest theme of the poets — too numerous to name. Earth's crammed with heav'n, and every bush afire with God. The sun, the moon, the stars, the seas, the hills and the plains. Are not these, O Soul, the vision of Him who reigns ? In humming loom of Time I work the living garment of Divinity. All are but part of one stupendous Whole, Whose Body Nature is, and God the Soul. Centuries before Athanasius had told the pagans they had no pretext of ignorance of God, having be- fore them Nature, his image ; they had only to look Through Nature up to Nature's God ; But alas that it was left for Pope to say Slave to no sect, who takes no private road. The poplared hill is a 'calm of God' Made visible that men might bless it at their will. May not the lofty mountains and the hills Be Voice of God; his song, the gentle flowers; His chant, the stars' procession; and alas. His only sigh, these human hearts of ours. Had we but space to give Hugo's inimitable Extase as we can give Mrs Browning's belief That ev'ry natural flower which grows on earth Implies a flower on the spiritual side. Substantial, archetypal, all aglow with blossoming causes. Thus each star becomes a 'burning artery' that is a Conduit of God's life afar. lOO Prophetic Art Brahma, the immanent Deity, is everywhere. They reckon ill who leave Me out; When Me they fly I am the wings; I am the doubter and the doubt; And I the hymn the Brahmin sings It is God who 'walks' in the morning wind, in silent mute, and sacred majesty (Maurice Stern). Whittier: And India's mystics sang aright Of the one life pervading all. One Being's tidal rise and fall. In soul and form, in sound and sight. Eternal outflow and recall. In the God we live and move and have our being. 1 saw the Great was small, and also saw the Small was great For God's own image was in all I saw. Jelluladin. This Presence of God is revealed in the beauty of the world; Browning pointing out the connexion God 's in his heaven. All's right with the world. Only a flower, yet whispering fond The tidings glad from realms above. Bidding our hearts with joy respond To God the Father's boundless love. — J. Plummer. Even the weeds are the work of God (Gulistan Yet He who made the flowers placed us on the self-same sod; He knows our reason for being. We are grass in the garden of God In a thousand flow'rs is the writing of love engraved; How beautiful is the Earth when it bears the Heav'ns. Rueckert. Rightly does Johanna Ambrosius say that it is thro' the beauty of Nature that those whose finer senses are closed learn to see the beauty of God, and feel his Presence. One bird, one star, one flower are, ei- ther of them, enough to make life worth living. Prophetic Art loi Not only the beauty of Nature reveals the Pres- ence of God; the human frame, and its product, a city. Memorable are Wordsworth's lines on London Earth has not anything to show more fair; Dull would he be of soul who could prss by A sight so touching in its majesty. Knowest thou Me not? As God, I glow with thee, and feel; When I forsake, 'tis but to leave more place for Beauty's entering. Says Vrchlicky. So says Rueckert from the Persian: Of that Great Tree that ever bears new leaves, am I a leaf; Let Winds destroy me, tear me down, my Stem remains untouched O Sun, I am thy Beam; O Rose, I am thy fragrant Breath; I am thy Drop, O Sea. I am thy Breeze, O Air. Mrs Browning) God! God! Spirit of my spirit! who movest Thro* seraph veins in burning deity to light the quenchless pluses ! Well said Keats, Truth is Beauty, Beauty Truth. The World-spirit works through the power of Man. (Tegner. Like a latin manuscript is man (Mrs. Browning Poring o'er which obscene text we may discern Perhaps some fair, fine trace of what was written once Some up-stroke of an alpha and omega expressing the old Scripture Unless Beauty bewithin, how could Man make it ? Thou seest no beauty, save thou make it first; Man, Woman, Nature, is but each a glass Where the soul sees the image of herself. Visible echoes, offspring of herself. (Holmes It is the God within, therefore, who leads us to re- cognize the God without, as colour-blindness alters the scenery. Consequently, who seeks to find God without must first develop the God within. Theism is therefore based on Pantheism. Jesus was there- fore right when he told men to look for the King- dom of Heaven within themselves; and Sokratcj was right when he said to them. Know Thyself. 101 Prophetic Art II. What hinders God's Imm2k.nence in the Self from being recognized ? The motions of the body, the afFeftions and passions of the flesh, the weariness of the mind, all these operate in disturb- ing the mirror-like, glassy surface of the lake, so that the rays of the sun's light cannot penetrate it. This is the time-worn Hindu illustration, and there is no denying that it is very apt in certain senses ; The Western writers, not so symbolical, limit them- selves to the bald statement of the principle under- lying that picturesque parable — the opposition be- tween Spiritual Perception and Passion. Mary Mag- dalene throws away the cup of wine, and falls down before the Christ, tears streaming down her cheeks. Could but thy soul, O Man, become a silent night, God would be born in thee, and set all things aright. So sings that true Silesian Angel, Scheffler. Verily, we have sinned against our souls, following lower Lords (Edwin Arnold). So the Bhaghavadh-Gita : Triple is the Gate of Hell, destruftive of the Self — Lust, Wrath, and Greed; therefore let Man avoid these three. The Greek counterpart to this, the 'Pidture' of Ke- bes, calls them Opinions, Desires, and Lusts. 'As a lamp sheltered from the wind flickereth not'. Jami portrays the returning soul looking back from sin : Supreme is thine Original degree, thy star upon the top of Heav'n But Lust will bring it down, down to the dust. That the heart should become the mirror of God is the dream of Ferid-din Attar; and Paul writes of lihe time when we shall see not as in a mirror darkly but face to face. Prophetic Art 103 Unless the mirror be clean it breaks reflexions. Glory about thee, without thee, and thou fulfillest thy doom Making Him broken gleams, and a stifled splendor and gloom. Purify, sanffify thy nature, clarify it from harshness, change it; Woe to him who makes gloom of the faint traces of God's image. So cries de Genestet, the spiritual Dutch poet. With what cracked pitchers go we to deep wells in this world ! So observes Mrs Browning rightly; and we do so when whole oceans of it were not enough. But as our modern life is unavoidably complicated our modern life will have to develop the heroism to fuse all these elements, as Rachel did (M. Arnold. In her, like us, there clashed contending powers, Germany, France, Christ, Moses, Rome, The strife, the mixture in her soul is ours. Her genius and her glory are our own. For not to any race or any clime Is the complete sphere of life revealed; Gathering from every land the prismal gleams Which when united form the perfeft ray. Trailing only clouds of glory do we come from God when we should be blazing in effulgent splendour. This is the common Persian insight; Ferid-din Attar A jewel am I; all beings mirror their face in it, as in ten thousand mirrors; but thou bearest in thine own spirit the whole Universe, together with the King of all being Himself. Men bear God in their spirits; but He might as well be far away, unless they refled his light. To God then all souls are alike; he is within each. We have the Truth, they cry; and yet their oracle. Trumpet it as they will, is but the same as thine. Above the whole earth is stretched the same sky; God is above all, within each forevermore. I04 Prophetic Art III. Know Thyself is therefore the kernel of all spirituality. Look within, for the Kingdom of Heaven, for the Still Small Voice, the Inner Light, the Intelleftual Radiance, Knowledge of God's will. There, syllabled by silence, let me hear The Still Small Voice that reached the Prophet's ear. (Whittier. To Becerra the Voice came, to remind him that is best which lies nearest : do the duty next at hand. Shape from that thy work of art. In the 'Vision of Sir Launfal' the Angel sought so far is found, years after, at the gate of home. And according to Plutarch the Genius of Sokrates warn- ed him from within himself what not to do. Polon- ski sings of the Inner Voice, and Tjutschew preach- es the consciousness of the universal life of God. Then of the Thee-in-Me who works behind The Veil, I lifted up my hands to find A lamp amid the Darkness; and I heard As from Without, the Me-Within-Thee-BIind. (Omar, Milton's 'Umpire Conscience' is this ; Keats : He ne'er is crown'd who fears to follow where airy voices lead. Whittier's 'still witness within the heart' that The true Soul that cannot but go true (Jami Goes as straight and fast as light, as high as God. (Mrs Browning But de Genestet the wise spiritual leader is cautious Go, seek for something in thy heart — but see to it That thou succeed in drawing something out of it. How far from here to Heav'n? Not very far, my friend; A single hearty step will all thy journeys end. So Scheffler. Max Kalbeck, the German poet adds. What Death and Life took from you must you restore yourself; And out of Darkness and Grief must your own Genius raise you. Prophetic Art 105 'Know Thyself is the oracle of Sesostres, of So- krates, of the Christian Fathers. Faust asks rightly Is Parchment indeed the sacred well, from which a drink quench- es thirst forevermore? Refreshment nevermore can be thine own until it spring from thine own heart. Ev'n in a palace life may be led well . . And when my ill-schooled spirit is aflame Some nobler, ampler stage of life to win, I'll stop and say. There were no succour here — The aids to nobler life are all within. So Matthew Arnold. Geijer asks with pertinency. What helps it if we have all, only not ourselves ? Can any have experience vicariously ? So Sokrates on the strength of his own experience dares to say : For I have heard the voices of the Immortal Gods. Like our English Hartley Coleridge, Rueckert says Whatever earthly thing thou would'st begin, lift it up in prayer to God. In prayer wilt thou find a touchstone whether thy earth- ly purpose dares to stand before the heav'nly Will. Who finds more faults in himself than in others. He is safe, for he knows himself. This is Simienski's safe test. Scheffler is ever wise : Though Christ a thousand times in Bethlehem be bom If he's not born in thee, thy soul is still forlorn. Know then thyself, presume not God to scan; The proper study of Mankind is Man. So our sensible Pope. And was not this what our own Emerson meant when he complains. The Soul is not preached ! For indeed, what are they all, both Greece and Rome, and all their pride. When Man in the bush with God may meet ? Proud indeed is the record of Matthew Arnold : Yea, I take myself to witness that I have loved no darkness, so- phisticated no truth, nursed no delusion, allowed no fear. io6 Prophetic Art M, Arnold, Goethe, Tennyson all say the same : Man has a mind to plan his safety; Know that, and help thyself. 'Tis not the spirit-world that's closed; thy sense is clogged ! Speak to him thou, for He hears, and spirit with spirit can meet; Closer is He than breathing, and nearer than hands and feet. Thus is God known within the self, so Pope calls him 'the God within the mind'; and Mrs Browning, 'God, the spirit of my spirit'. Shelley sings, I have heard by my own heart this joyous truth averred The spirit of the worm beneath the sod In love and worship blends itself with God. Hatred of cant and doubt of human creeds may well be felt; The unpardonable sin is to deny the Word of God within. So Whittier; nor can we refrain from the Biblical That they should seek the Lord if haply they might find him, though he be not far from every one of us . . . Neither shall they say, lo here, or lo there, for behold, the Kingdom of God is within you. The human self is therefore a kind of outlet for the Divine; or, from the eternal and infinite sea of light and strength the outlet is within each man. O Perkhon, may thy spirit gently breathe through my deeds ! cries the devout Lettish pagan ; Wordworth sees Man's Immortality broods o'er him like the Day, A Master o'er a Slave, a Presence which is not to be put by. Let us clean the tubes and wait for rains said Mrs Browning, most probably unconscious of following closely in thought early Church Fathers whose delight it was to think of man as a flute. Jami says; The Almighty hand, that out of common earth Thy mortal outward to the perfeft form Of beauty moulded, in the fleeting dust Inscribed Himself, and in thy bosom set A mirror to refleft Himself in thee. Prophetic Art 107 IV. Divine Des./*tiny. The end of the process that begins as Conscience, or occasional listening to the Divine Voice is to vibrate so perfectly with, or be attuned to the Divine as to justify the description of having become divine. So Dante calls the Blessed 'lamps' of the divine fire, the unapproachable Light. God dwelleth in a light far out of human ken; Become thyself that light, and thou wilt see him then. So Scheffler; this is blessedness indeed (A.P.Neale To know myself born for a future with God for its centre and sun Whose cycles all golden with glory for ever and ever shall run. Motes in th'eternal splendour of the Sun Are the heart, and ev'ry star of night, and songs of lark. The fragrance of the rose, and all that lives and strives and laughs. O Light, whether thou dartest from the clouds as lightning. Or glowest in the glow-worm or the darkling sea; Whether moon, or star or sun to thee give birth. Light, where'er thou shinest— lo, I worship thee. So sings Feisi; and no less sublimely Jami, Thyself prime Archetype, and ultimate Accomplishment of Man. We cannot omit these words of Mahmud Shebisteri You ask who may be called a Pilgrim of the Path ? He who exaftly knows his Origin; Who as a free-man passes swiftly through the world. Who has, his passions' steps retracing, come to God. Until he has become a Human Perfeft and Entire. When man shall have become divine, his words will have become so too; till then his prophecies con- sist of the Divine Voice speaking through his lips. From the clouds never fell a Voice divine into the ear of Man; But in himself, there have I listened for it. There did I hear the heavenly choir. (de Genestet The least of songs, tho' worldly, contains within itself a prayer; With look divine it lightens up a corner of the world. (Rueckert. io8 Prophetic Art How known, they know not; why, they cannot find; So straight call out on genius; say, A man produced this. When much rather they should say, 'Tis insight, and he saw this. So Mrs Browning, who may represent our English poets; but the European are not any less conscious of their prophetic dignity — but Hendel sings best. To Thee, O God, I swear the great and beautiful oath; Faithful will I ever be to the highest law; devoutly, worthily of Sacred priesthood's dignity, will I administer thy Prophetic Word. Lanier's Bards or Holy Malcontents are priests of Petoesi' Temple of Poetry, which ever remains open to those who come to pray. But Tegner is Inspired Midst stress of storm deity seizes on me; a god dwells in my song. Keep up the fire! and leave the generous flames to shape themselves The Breath whose might I have invoked in song descends on me; My spirit's bark is driv'n far from the shore, far from the trem.bl- ing throng whose sails were never to the tempest given. This mantic fury is the kernel of which poetry is the rind, acutely observes Nizami. But enough. It is by uttering Divinity, that men grow divine. Kolzow knows of naught more reverend than man; more than temples, thinks Whittier's Cesarius. For after all, it is the Man who is needed, as said by Goethe's Mephistopheles, in immortal words : How Merit and Good Fortune are connefted will never entei the minds of those fools. Had they even the Philosopher's-Stone, It wera useless for lack of a Philosopher to use it. Pope, Matthew Arnold, Shelley say the same : An honest Man is the noblest work of God. This is the new world's Gospel, Be ye Men. The Man remains, — sceptreless, free, uncircumscribed, but man; Equal, unclassed, tribeless and nationless. Exempt from awe, worship and degree; the king Over himself; just, gentle, wise — but Man. t Prophetic Art 109 V. Self-Dependence. In all the fore-going the soul was repeatedly directed to depend on itself. If it do so there is no escaping the conclusion that the soul becomes its own heaven and hell. Pope catches the right spirit when he says What Conscience diftates to be done, or warns me not to di This teach me more than hell to shun. That more than heaven pursue. The classical expression of the thought is of course that of Omar Khayyam : I sent my soul through the Invisible Some letter of the after-life to spell; And by and by my soul returned to me. And answered, I myself am Heaven and Hell: Heaven but the Vision of fulfilled desire. And Hell the shadow of a soul on fire. Cast on the darkness into which ourselves So late emerged from, shall so soon expire. Magnificent is Milton's word about Satan : For within him Hell he brings, and round him, nor from Hell One step more than from himself can fly by change of place. Heaven is there where love and faith made heaven — let me go! says Yudhisthira, preferring Hell with his brethren than the Heaven he has merited and attained with- out them. An echo of this are the indistind traditi- ons of the descent into Hell of Jesus. How true is Longfellow's word that Heaven is as near by sea as by land, since It is within the soul itself. We are sure that it is a state or condition, whether or not there be also places suitable for the assembling, centering or gravitation of souls in such conditions. no Prophetic Art Considerations of place are therefore negligeable; as Rueckert remarks, the stars are visible from eve- rywhere. Whittier presents this thought often. There is no place where God is not; Love will make, where'er it be, a holy spot. The cross-boughed tree marked the spot and made it holy ground; He needs the earthly city not who hath the heav'nly found. In mercy or in judgment he shall turn or overturn. Till the heart shall be his temple where all of Him shall learn. Rachel, the actress, stops by the empty play-house. Ah, where the spirit its highest life hath led. All spots, matched with that spot, are less divine; And Rachel's Switzerland, her Rhine are here. That the Soul itself is the sacred sanctuary is the manifoldly repeated message of SchefBer. The Soul wherein God dwells, what Church could holier be ? Becomes a walking tent of holy majesty. Pope summarizes the whole matter perfectly : To Thee whose temple is all space, whose altar earth, sea, skies One chorus let all Being raise, all Nature's incense rise. The road is within. None can hinder a willing soul. 'The Vision of Sir Launfal' tells the truth — Christ knocks at the door of each soul; "whosoever will" Let him come and take the waters of life freely. So also Uhland's 'Beggar' was the Lord Himself ; so also Christina Rossetti's 'Despised and Rejected' To bring thee to thy God Love takes the shortest route; The way which knowledge leads is but a round-about. But love is in the power of all. Well says Lowell ; Earth gets its price for what Earth gives us; 'Tis Heaven alone that is given away; 'Tis only God may be had for the asking; June may be had by the poorest comer. Prophetic Art hi VI Divine Di./'content. Although the Higher Pantheism reveals to Man his divinity, it must not be forgotten that it is as yet but a possibility. For the very divinest of his attributes is to discover wi- thin himself infinite depths, endless reaches of pos- sibilities, endowing him with a hunger and thirst af- ter all this ever-deepening holiness and beauty — a Divine Discontent. Surely this constitutes the mea- sure of a man's value — his possibilities, his destined divinity. Let a man but lull or destroy this hunger; being satisfied, he will no more alter, repent, im- prove, grow, develop, evolve, progress, or deify. He is dead already, while yet living. He is but flotsam and jetsam stranded on the seashore; an empty shell whose only significance is that of a fossil, a speci- men, a curio. This is the significance of Goethe's Faust. He was to forfeit his soul to Mephistopheles Should I ever say to the present moment. Linger with me, I would enjoy thee more. The drama unrolls successively in every condition and country — but nowhere is rest; no, not until the blessedness of a good conscience dawns on Faust, who involuntarily expressing satisfaction technically loses his wager to Mephistopheles who rightly feels cheated by the Heavenly Powers, quite failing to understand that it was to Divine Discontent Faust had committed himself; to eflfect which Gretchen was removed to a higher heaven, lest in meeting her Faust become contented with a lower heaven. The Eternal- Feminine draws us ever upward. 112 Prophetic Art This Divine Discontent receives further an excei lent illustration from its opposite. Sensual Content, as expressed in Tennyson's Homeric 'Choric Song'. But they, going immediately, were mingled with the Lotos-eat- ing men; nor did the Lotophagi devise destruction for our compa- nions, but they gave them to taste of the Lotos. But whoever of them ate of the pleasant fruit of the Lotos, he no longer wished to bring back news, nor to return, but they preferred to stay there with the Lotophagi eating Lotos, and to be forgetful of return. Ah, the fatal Lotos ! How many, having tasted it, forget their return to their divine home above! This Lotos is not entirely imaginary, either; has not opium unnerved the Chinaman, coca the Peruvian, tobacco, alcohol and absinthe the Caucasian race ? Divine Unrest is it which makes 'a thing of beauty' A joy forever. Its loveliness increases; it will never pass into no- thingness; but still will keep a bower quiet for us. (These) Glories infinite haunt us, till they become a cheering light unto our souls, and bound to us so fast that whether there be shine or gloom o'er- cast they always must be with us, or we die. And Keats died, where most young men would have lived; it takes an Alexander to sigh for more worlds to conquer. True, Nature's beauties are unique; but Not for these I raise the song of thanks and praise; But for those obstinate questionings of sense and outward things. Fallings from us, vanishings. Intimations of Immortality, shadowy recollections. Be they what they may, are yet the fountain light of our day. Are yet a master-light of all our seeing. Should we not also with Wordsworth wish that strenuous action become our destiny. And life be one perpetual growth of heav'n-ward enterprise. Prophetic Art i 13 Tegner says truly that to the true saint The Earth grows small and narrow; with heavenly home-sickness the wanderer longs and pines, and the yearning of the spirit is de>- votion. In each heart trembles a compass-needle Which restless turns to the eternal home. So Prince Schcsnaich-Carolath; and Rueckert says. The Swallow leaves her nest, and seeks a warmer clime; Earth's joys have vanished; Soul, begin thy upward flight. De Genestet, with keen spiritual perception, cries. So long as Man strives upward, he may go which way he please. So long as his direftion but excites and vivifies. The Rod divine we know and kiss, that drives us up God's path; And though our courage fail, we run, and seek God's Jerusalem. I know my Goal, and know what forces my ascent; and finally The splendor of God's aureole my forehead yet must crown. So Vrchlicky; while Rueckert cries with pathos. O pray more earnestly than ever for a deeper spiritual life! 'Tis well, be humble, feel unworthiness with angels to consort; But pray — no wand'ring star can break away from Central Sun. Before each stands a pifture of what someday he must become — And not until he have become that can he be at rest. So our souls 'amid the lions of our 'tumultuous Senses moan defiance, and answer roar for roar, as spirits can. So speaks Mrs Browning. But sleeping-potions — Sad cure! For who would lose, though full of pain. This intelleftual being, thoughts that wander through eternity? Panteth not our soul after Thee, O God, as the hart panteth after the water-brooks ? How amiable are Thy tabernacles, O Lord of Hosts ! Nay, the o"nff- erings of this present time are not worthy to be com- pared with the glory that shall be revealed in us; doth not the creature wait in earnest expectation for the manifestation of the sons of God. 1 14 Prophetic Art Prize what is yours, but be not quite contentea; There is a healthful restlessness of soul By which a mighty purpose is augmented In urging men to reach a higher goal. So Meredith; but more devoutly Holmes : In one devotion blend to speak the soul's eternal want Of Him the inmost Friend. The gad-fly pricks Mrs Browning up and down Until that Hand shall overtake me wholly And on my head lay down its large influftuating peace. How beautiful Gerok's poem with the refrain I would go Home. O let my heavenly love perpetually increase That it may drive humanity unto the heights. So Prince Schoenaich-Carolath. Gustav Falke prays: Lord, let me hunger now and then. Lest being satisfied I dull and lazy grow; O send me enemies, man after man. That Struggle may increase my energies. Let me grow fleet of foot, and strong of wing to fly. That I may hang my destined crown yet higher in the stars. We cannot close without George Herbert's 'Pulley' When God at first made Man, having a glass of Blessings Standing by. Let us, said He, pour on him all We can; Let the World's Riches, that dispersed lie, contraft into a span. So Strength first made a way, then Wisdom, Honour, Pleasure. When almost all was gone, God made a stay, perceiving that Alone of all His treasure Rest in the bottom lay. For if I should, said He, bestow this jewel also on my Creature, He would adore My Gifts instead of Me, and rest In Nature, not the God of Nature, so both should losers be. Yet let him keep the rest, but keep them with repining restlessness Let him be rich and vrcury, that at least, if Goodness Lead him not, yet Weariness may toss him to My breast. Prophetic Art 115 Chapter IV The Trdk.n./*cendent Divine : Initiak.tion. After having watched the Lyrical Aspiration de- velop gradually from the hoarse cry of passion to the deepest devotion, and having considered its va- rious attainments, the question occurred how it could sound within its register notes so divergent. The answer was that of Pantheism, Because the soul is divine in her own right, and contains Divinity with- in herself. So far, so good. But here we are forced to draw a clear distind;ion between Lower Pantheism and Higher Pantheism. The former takes advant- age of those reasonings to assert that as God is the Soul, nothing exists higher than Man, and conse- quently that Man may and should live as he pleases. This however was an error in logic, inasmnch as our arguments had proved only that Man contained Divinity unrealized, potentially only. It is this Un- realized Divinity, the practical Discipline of Real- izing or Actualizing Divinity which constitutes the 'Higher Pantheism', holy and blessed as it is. To preserve our Pantheism at the higher level we must ever simultaneously assert the Transcendence of this Impending Divinity — to the consideration of which this last Chapter is devoted. However logically in- conceivable this be, Nature shows us an example in Man : true, his Mind is within his Body, but the Body is not all there is of Him, nor is it his Best. Ii6 Prophetic Art What the Higher Pantheism is will probably ap- pear most clearly by contrast with what it is not — the Lower Pantheism; e.g., that of Walt Whitman. Divine am I, inside and out, and I make holy whatever I touch. The scent of these arm-pits aroma finer than prayer. This head more than churches, bibles, and all creeds. Why should I pray? Why should I venerate and be ceremonious? Having pried through the strata, analyzed to a hair, counselled with doftors, and calculated close, I find no sweeter fat than sticks to my bones. What is the pradical deduction from this intoxi- cation with Immanence to the point of obscuring Transcendence ? The moral standard of Animality: I think I could turn and live with animals, they are so placid and Self-contained; I look at them long and long. They do not sweat and whine about their condition. They do not lie awake in the dark and weep for their sins. They do not make me sick discussing their duty to God, Not one is dissatisfied, not one is demented with the mania of Owning things; not one kneels to another. Nor to his kind that lived thousands of years ago; Not one is respectable or unhappy over the whole earth. Words cannot paint more clearly the opposite of the anguish of divine discontent, which alone makes growth and progress possible, let alone probable. This unattained, transcendent Ideal, this glimpse of the immortal splendours of the New Jerusalem are therefore rooted in Conscience, a recognition of our failures to live up to our Standards; in Repentance, in Veneration — as Goethe says, Das Schaudern ist der Menschheit bester Theil. Reverence is the noblest attribute of Humanity. It is from this abyss of human impotence and blind- ness that Dante, 'de profundis', cries up to God as Him who sees and who can. Prophetic Art 117 As expressed in the Anglo-Saxon Chronicle, life is like a bird that flies into the house from one side, and flies out at the other; whence and whither, who knows? Well may Vrchlicky represent the Pyramids as mocking Man, with his powerlessness over Na- ture, and ignorant of the Hereafter. This the riddle of the Sphinx, as the Greeks put it. If it be true that, viftorious, I accomplish the purpose of earth-life My Universe entire cannot fall a prey to Darkness; Somehow, this Prison must stand revealed a Paradise. Only when men stand face to face with death will they turn for help to the Mountains; Schewtshenko Then will I leave the Mountain and the Valley, all that there is; Then, myself, will I fly to God, and pray; but till then I will know no God. How we tremble in surprise when sometimes with an awful sound God's plummet strikes the ground. So Mrs. Browning; and with Pope we confess Though Man's a fool, yet God is wise. This IS the oft-repeated cry of Tennyson: Be near me when my faith is dry, be near me when I fade away. To point the term of human strife, and on the low, dark Verge of life, the twilight of eternal day. Oh, yet we trust that somehow good will be the final goal of ill; To pangs of nature, sins of will, defefts of doubt and taints of blood That nothing walks with aimless feet; that not one life shall be des- troyed or cast as rubbish to the void. When God hath made the pile complete. So runs my dream; but what am I? An infant crying in the night: An infant crying for the light, and with no language but a cry. And this cry rises, in the words of Holmes, to The Father of this helpless nursery-brood These are the words of the noblest, holiest, most enlightened spirits of our modern civilization. ii8 Prophetic Art This divine Transcendence was of course recog- nized in the Past. So the African Khoi-khoi : Son of the thunder-cloud, thou brave, loud-speaking; — Talk softly, please, for I have no guilt; leave me alone. Five thousand years ago Egyptians prayed thus: Reproach me not for my many sins — I am young and weak of body; I am a man without a heart. Anxiety preys on me as an ox feedeth upon grass; Come to me. Thou art He that giveth help. Six thousand years ago the Babylonian prayed thus: Lord, my sins are many, great are my sins. I threw myself on the ground, none grasped my hand; Loud cried 1; none heard me. The Chinese expressed divine Transcendence thus Great, great is God, who ruleth Man below! Awful is He in Judgment when the Many vicious grow. The host of men begotten of Heaven, rest not in its decrees; Not one but hath the Primal Good, scarce one its full degrees. Jelluladin the great Sufi poet prays thus: Thou Guide of all desires! Strengthless am I! Send help! Thou glorious Sun of Faith! Ah, delay not Thy help To me, the bird in the cage! Strengthless am I! Send help! But we may gain the notion of Transcendence not only from our failures ; our Ideals woo us God- wards obstinately. Flaubert says so well. None can ever give the exaft measure of either his needs, con- ceptions or suffering; human speech is a cracked cauldron on which we beat melodies fit to make bears dance, when we would draw tears from the stars. God keeps a niche in heaven to hold our idols; and albeit He brake them to our faces, and denied That our close kisses should impair their white, I know we shall behold them, raised complete. The dust swept from their beauty, glorified. New Menmons, singing in the great God-light. (Mrs. Browning. Prophetic Art 119 Browning, in his 'Abt Vogler' well describes The high that proved too high, the heroic for earth too-hard. Are music sent up to God by the lover and the batd; Enough that he heard it once; we shall hear it by and by. If nowhere on earth I found goodness I still would believe in it, for I felt it writhin myself. Rueckert thus expresses it; and Tennyson All we have power to see is a straight staff bent in a pool; And the ear of man cannot hear, and the eye of man cannot see; But if we could hear and see, this Vision, were it not he ? We thus reach the full conception of Transcend- ence, bodied forth in Mt Sinai, that was altogether on a smoke, because the Lord descended upon it in fire, and the smoke thereof ascended as the smoke of a furnace, and the whole mount quaked greatly. Elizabeth Browning is right; God is not The bare result of what his hand materially has made. Expressed in such an algebraic sign, called God. This is the stand-point of Lower Pantheism; the Higher Pantheism on the contrary makes souls Smile to think His greatness flows around our incompleteness. Round our restlessness. His rest. Rightly does Jelluladin hear all Nature singing a Benedicite : Hence, be still, and listen to the lays of birds: See how they float down from the great spirit-land ! So Seeger, the Swiss poet, looking at an eagle soar- ing above the Wengern Alp cries out Thus floats far high above the silent All the wakefiol spirit of God The Assyrian cries out, 'In the Heavens, who is ex- alted, but thou ?' The Khoi-khoi addresses the Danw-God as the Khub, the Lord, the Ruler. I20 Prophetic Art In all ages victory in battle has been attributed to divine interposition (as the Hebrews, the Persians). Frechette, the Canadian laureate, learns from Nature Whom God doth guard is stronger than the strong. Whether or no we disbelieve in a God, yet So comes to us at times from the Unknown, The inaccessible solitudes of Being, The rushing of the sea-tides of the soul; And inspirations that we deem our own Are some divine foreshadowing and foreseeing Of things beyond our reason and control. And what poet has not believed and sung The light that never was on land or sea . . . That light whose smile kindles the Universe, That beauty in which all things work and move . , . Well may we falter where we firmly trod And falling with my weight of cares That slope through darkness up to God, And stretch lame hands of faith and grope. And gather dust and chaff, and call to what we feel is lord of all. And faintly trust the larger hope. This conception of transcendence teaches us that wc are but branches of the one transcendent Vine, the Father of us all; who is above all, and through all,- and in you all. Rightly indeed is this the name by which he shall be called, the Lord our Righteous- ness, seeing that he transcends yet our failures of to-day. So we grope, groaning and travailing in pain together until now, waiting for the adoption, the assumption of our body and life into the Lord our transcendent Righteousness, of whom Dante dream- ed when he sang of the Love that moves the Sun and the other Stars. Prophetic Art 12 i II Divinity. So much for the conception of Transcendence; but what is it that is transcendent ? Beyond description as the Transcendent must nat- urally be, all that men do ( even when they pretend to do, or think they are doing more, as St. Thomas Aquinas and Spinoza ), is to tell over the precious names applied to it by the love of those who have had experience of this great Spiritual Reality gener- ally referred to as God, Elohim (the Mighty Ones, the Holy Ones). The most touching of all Is the Plotinic name 'the Good One' — a standing rebuke to such Calvinistic views of God as drew from our Whittier the little girl's reply to her Father: Oh, I fear Him! said the daughter, and I try to love Him too; Bat I wish He was good and gentle, kind and loving as you. What Isaiah thought of God appears from names he uses. Wonderful, Counsellor, the Mighty God, the Everlasting Father, the Prince of Peace. The Muhammadans have coUedled from the Koran 99 names of God for the faithful to repeat by beads of their rosary. Our Holmes and the pseudo-Johannine Epistles call God Love — but why no others, asks Matthew Arnold: God's Wisdom and God's Goodness, What schools have yet so much as heard this simpler lore? This no saint preaches, and this no Church rules; 'Tis in the desert, now and heretofore. Better than the Hebrew name 'the Fear of our Father Abraham' are the Egyptian names Creator, Father of the Gods, Soul of the Sun, Self-begotten. Sweetest of all are the names given God by Indians The Higher One, the Old Man above, the Heart 122 Prophetic Art of the Sky, the Prince of the Azure Planisphere, Soul of the Sky, Maker and Moulder of All, the Mother and Father of Life. Lovely is Ponce de Leon's 'Shepherd', and the New Testament 'Good Shepherd'. The Chinese Odes address the Father of the Fields, and the Khoi-Khoi kneeling at the grave of Heitsi-bib says, O Thou our Grand-father, Let me lucky be. Give me game. Let me find honey and roots. That I may bless Thee again; art Thou not our Great-grand-father? So the Amazulu worship Unkulunkulu, the Father of Fathers. The gentle Lettish people love to rev- erence an Earth-Mother, a Sea-Mother, a Garden- Mother, a Wind-Mother, the original God being a 'Father of Fate'. Sweetest of all names is therefore that of Father. Lord, what demandest Thou in return for all Thy gifts? For all the refreshing delights of Thy beneficence? With gratitude we call Thee Father; nor know we of any More worthy sacrifice than oifering Thee this Name. So the Polish Kochanowski, while our own Whittier The Faith the old Norse heart confessed in one dear Name, The hopefullest and tenderest heard from mortal lips, (seas. In pangs of birth and death, from ships ice-bitten in the winter Or lisped beside a mother's knee, the wiser world hath not Outgrown, and the All-Father is our own. 'Father of all!' he urges his strong plea, 'Thou lovest all; Thy erring child may be lost to himself, but never lost to Thee. Well may Malachi ask Have we not all one Father? Has not one God created as ? He who sends rain on Just and Unjust, who clothes the lily of the field, and numbers the hairs of his children. Will we not with Tegner exclaim What matters it what Name we give to the Father of All ? Prophetic Art 123 But we are asked, have we not merely deluded ourselves ? Is not this charaderization of the Trans- cendent as Father a survival from animism and an- cestor-worship, rather than a rational belief. Survival it no doubt is; but its longevity is due to a certain group of experiences which have repeatedly come in answer to prayer, in all times and countries, which cannot be described more accurately in any other way. This the Persian poet utters as simply as possible, It is well for us to remember that we are not Four, but Five: He who protects us is here. Not only must he number our hairs but satisfy that Mother-want about the world, like lambs shut out at night, which at times oppresses the strongest and wisest. But still I feel that His embrace Slides down by thrills through all things made. Through sight and sound of every place. As if my tender Mother laid on my shut lids her kisses' pressure. Half-waking me at night, and said. Who kissed you thro' the dark, dear guesser? On the Heavenly Mother's breast Shall his seeking child find rest. The whole problem is solved when with Rueckert At midnight, O Mankind, I fought the battle of thy sorrows; How could I have decided it, with my puny strength, at midnight? At midnight I gave the watch into thine hand: (night. Master of hfe and death, 'tis Thou who holdest watch at mid- Well is it with him who does this. For even if we Lose breath sometimes, and cry, 'God save me, if there's any God' Bui even so, God saved me, and being dashed from error on to er- ror, every turn still brought me nearer to the central truth. So the Lord went before the Children of Israel as they marched through desert; by day, as pillar of cloud, to lead them; by night as a pillar of fire to give them light. 124 Prophetic Art in Divine Love seems therefore to be the first element of Divine Parentity, illustrated particularly in the Parable of the Prodigal Son, both in its New Testament and Buddhist forms, enforcing respect- ively its Paternal and Maternal elements. First the Paternal aspect of Love, which saw the returning Prodigal from afar off, ran to him, em- braced him, and brought him home to a feast. This may well encourage the sorrowing Children who ask Is it likely God with his angels singing round Him Hears our weeping any more ? (Mrs Browning. Aye indeed, since He heard the contrite silence of the Publican through the noisy prayers of Pharisee. His Holy Spirit comes to bear witness with our spi- rit that we are the children of God. If the Devil is the Great Accuser, then is God, in the language of Egyptian Book of the Dead, the Bull of the West who smites the accusers of the meek. Impressively does Dante call God "the Great First Lover" of all. Thy Father calleth. Run, O daughter Soul, to wait on Him ! He who loves thee as none loveth bids thee give thy heart to him. So Christina Rossetti. The Persian Ferid-din Attar calls the Universe a Market of Love, whose hall- mark appears on sun, moon, and stars. Our Shelley rightly interprets the everlasting Promethean cry I fain would be what it is my Destiny to be. The Saviour and the Strength of suffering Man, Or sink into the original gulf of things. However, it is Whittier and Longfellow who have given the subject its classical expression. Prophetic Art 125 Who counts his brother's welfare as sacred as his own. And loves, forgives and pities, he serveth Me alone. The Gate of Heaven opens to none alone Save thou one soul, and it shall save thine own. It is this unselfish love which is the crown of man, this love which inspired De Genestet to love, more than the slim bride, more than the fair and tender wife, who guarded the home like a good genius; more than the unselfish mother; more than all these the frail, weary, sick spirit, whose patience taught her husband to live and die In hope. Likewise the Spirit also helpeth our mfirmities ; for we know not what we should pray for as we ought; but the Spirit itself maketh intercession for us with groanings which cannot be uttered. This brings us to the Maternal Love which does not content itself with waiting for the Prodigal, but as in the Buddhist parable leaves its Throne in or- der to educate him back to princely dignity, itself disguised. This Love that goes out to seek the lost is that of Angels, Ministering Spirits, Saviours or Redeemers — nay, they come in guise of children. I had a little daughter, and she was given to me To lead me gently backward to the Heavenly Father's knee; That I, by the force of nature might in some dim wise divine The deptli of his infinite patience to this wayward soul of mine. Vast is the mercy of God, and when a man doeth aright. Glad is the right-hand Angel, and setteth it quick on the roll; Ten times he setteth it down, in letters of heavenly light. For one good deed ten deeds, and a hundred for ten on the scroll. But alas, how often must Mine Angel look sorrowful upon the Face of God, 126 Prophetic Art There was need of Whittier's pure eyes to see that At every sin of ours The Angels of God in the pure sweet guise Of flowers, look on us with sad surprise. How often we are blind to the Great Cloud of Wit- nesses in Mahanaim, the chariots of fire, the Burn- ing Bush, the awful Eyes of God. Hesiod, the Greek poet, taught that when men of the Golden Race died they became unseen guardians of mortal men. Surely such angels will appear to us as they are seen amid the heavenly host. No enemy of awful mould, but he who loveth most. O pray that the office and service of Angels be trusted to all. To all of us who suffer in this Vale of Need. Such is the prayer of Martin GreifF on All Saints'. But rarely do we realize what a sacrifice it must be for the Holy Angels to remain with us, so im- pure, so earthy; may it not be to them what touch- ing pitch is to us ? Matthew Arnold thinks that Hardly, hardly shall one come with countenance bright At the close of day from the plain, his Master's errand well done Safe through the smoke of the fight, back to his master again. Welcome, my Angels, ye have brought a holier joy to Heaven. This suffering of the Divine in coming to Man is objedtified in the ideal of Saviour or Redeemer. He the Divine One came to save Man by shedding his fight; but ah, what fearful pain to Him the touch of the lepers, the indignities of the cross. So every Re- deemer suffers, and suffers gladly; but should it not make us humbler to know that our sins sadden Those who come to lead us out of them ? Prophetic Art 127 Friend, said He, My feet bleed. Open to Me, and comfort Me. What, He, the Divine One, in need of comfort ? All night long that Voice spake urgently. Open to Me. Still harping in mine ears. Rise, let Me in. Pleading with tears. Open to Me that I may come to thee. While the dew dropped, while the dark hours were cold My feet bleed. My hands bleed that bring thee grace; open to Mc So Christina Rossetti, while Vrchlicky, sublimely. As Christ approached the lepers' band. Thy path. Almighty Love, will lead thee here, to even us. Ye who by griefs are pinioned, shake loud your manacles! Cry through the window's bars, ye who by poisons are confined; Ring out, O Chains, for Love can hear you now. But the highest reach of the Redeemer-Ideal is shown in this, that the Redeemer becomes a Chast- ener. Whom God loves, He chastens. Sadi makes a child say of her friend. She tells me my faults, therefore she must love me. Elizabeth Browning voices our sorrow, O my God, how sick we must be, ere we make men just ! But the Divine is always just; just against us, as well as for us; just in chastening us, out of mere love, that someday we may be closer to Him. One of the Muhammadan titles for God is, the Divine Slayer. And Rueckert prays. Send Him thus in love, not anger, unto us; In proof of Thy love, O slay us for our sins. And now abide faith, hope, and charity, these three; but the greatest of these is charity — the kind that chastises us, if necessary, to educate and sanctify. For the perfecting of the saints, till we come unto a perfect man, unto the measure of the stature of the fiiUness of the Christ. 128 Prophetic Art IV Divine Wi^rdom. Love is divine; but only when rational, reasonable, just; but this means 'con- trolled by reason, by conscience.' Then only is it wise, or at all commendable; love therefore is not separable from its complement, wisdom. It is our faith in this Knowledge of ultra-mundane conditions that is in God by which we explain the suffering and and sorrow of the world, which would otherwise rightfully destroy our belief in God's love, let alone justice. This was the very grievance of Job; this was the very answer out of the Lord's whirlwind : Who is this that darkeneth counsel by words without knowledge ? But not Job only; even bold, zealous Jeremiah aslcs. Righteous art thou, O Lord, when I plead with thee; yet let me talk with thee of thy judgments; Wherefore doth the way of the of the wicked prosper ? This Omniscience of God is the solution of the problem of evil for both Goethe and Longfellow. We are informed that Mephistopheles is a part of that Power which ever desires the evil, but produ- ces the ultimate good. To this broadening of vision Longfellow looks for an explanation of Death: it is The Portal of the Life Elysian. May we illustrate this explanation of God's om- niscience by pointing out that the voices of child, youth and man, are not opposed, but mutually com- plementary in the Cathedral's symphonic chorus. This wholeness of life is what Matthew Arnold ad- mires in Sophokles, whose soul was even-balanced. Who saw life steadily, and saw it whole. The mellow glory of the Attic stage. Prophetic Art 129 This is what Pope expressed so perfectly : All Nature is but art, unknown to thee; All chance, direction which thou canst not see; All discord, harmony not understood; All partial evil, universal good; And spite of pride, in erring reason's spite. The truth is clear. Whatever is, is right. The Australian Neale sets this forth beautifully in his poem 'Midnight': it is God who understands, knows and sees. So also Johanna Ambrosius. The three prophets who have best expressed this are Elizabeth and Robert Browning and Tennyson. Elizabeth Browning shows how it takes seven men to perfectly make one pin only; how many more would not be needed to perfeft a man ? We make too small a part for God in these matters. The times we live in seem small, just as from near the Sphinx is only a mass of masonry, while from far it looms over the desert a miracle. All separate tones must be organized to become a tune. Robert Browning teaches this as his main message, almost. On the earth the broken arcs, in the heaven a perfect round. So in 'Ferishtah's Fancies' he enforces the value of the light of knowledge by the dangers of walking through even a room at home in common darkness. This is the theme of Tennyson's 'In Memoriam'. I see in part that all, as in some piece of art. Is toil cooperant to some end — I hear at times a sentinel Who moves about from place to place, and whispers To the worlds of space, in the deep night, that all is well. While thou, dear spirit, happy star, o'erlook'st the tumult From afar, and smilest, knowing all is well. 130 Prophetic Art But to-day's Transcendence of God implies it al- so from eternity to eternity. This is why God affects man with awe, although the latter's mental limita- tions cannot grasp more than from generation to ge- neration. The Greeks expressed this by attributing to Divinities perfect memory, mortals being forced to drink Lethe. Likewise the Teutons, in Beowulf: True is the Oracle that the mighty Creator of Man never forgets. Thy Throne remaineth from generation to generation. So sings Jeremiah, while Omar Khayyam declares They all change and perish, but He remains. EichendorfF makes this point very plainly, And wherever weary fighters sink in the bloody struggle. Still arise fresh generations honestly to fight it out. The True is the Eternal; His Word it sounds on From generation to generation into the Infinite. So Tegner, while Shelley in rapt prophecy cries. The OnP remains, the Many change and pass; Heaven's light forever shines. Earth's shadows flee; Life, like a dome of many-coloured glass Stains the white radiance of Eternity. Arthur Hugh Clough, the agnostic prophet, sings, It fortifies my soul to know that though I perish. Truth is so; Howe'er I stray and range, whate'er I do. Thou dost not change I steadier step when I recall that if I slip Thou dost not fall. But the result of Eternity and Memory is what Gerald Massey calls the Awful Eyes, the just Judge who hath a day on which he shall judge the quick and the dead. This notion was however of gradual development. Its most elementary conception is the Semitic Sheol or Hades. All go to it, good and bad. Homer knows of no judgment except for the ene- Prophetic Art 131 mies of the Gods; and this lack of moral grasp sur- vives in the modern Greek folk-songs, where the rich remain in sunshine, the poor In eternal shades; the adulterer fervently prays to God that he may find the husband in bed, so as to kill him easier (Yannakos, Elyannis). But elsewhere in the world rises the full-toned anthem of the prophets of all times insisting that God is accurate justice, not ma- gic — ^for instance, the prophecy of Isaiah: Howl ye, for the day of the Lord is at hand. At the Feast of Belshazzar the moving Hand writes Mene, Mene, Tekel, Upharsin. Hosea insists that they who have sown the wind shall reap the whirlwind; the Sermon on the Mount Judge not that ye be not judged. So also the parable of Dives and Lazarus. The Persian Sadi taught the same Soberness, as He who sows thorns shall never reap jasmine. The Indian thinks, admitted to that equal sky His faithful dog shall bear him company. So Pope; while Whitman sings in other tones, I speak the pass-word primeval, I give the sign of Democracy, I will not accept anything which all cannot have on the same terms This conception of Judgment is really due to the Egyptians, who depicted it in strange and fearful words in their sombre Book of the Dead, The night of the P'estival of Counting the Dead and Judging Souls, when a Call is made to count the Dead, by Osiris, the Chief in the Paths of the Dead. The Muhammadan reiterates the Separation of the Good and Bad, the Sheep and the Goats, the Com- panions of the Right Hand, and of the Left Hand. 132 Prophetic Art From the German Longfellow translates thus : Though the mills of Gods grind slowly yet they grind exceeding small; though with patience stands He waiting, with exactness grinds He all. And Emerson, echoing almost the Tao-teh-King of Lao-tse, writes the wisest words man ever spake, Wouldst thou seal up the avenues of ill ? Pay every debt, as if God wrote the bill. There is no such thing as Good Luck. Mephisto- pheles, with a smile and a bow, says to Faust, I am thy servant; but Faust bethinks himself. And what shall I in return fulfil for thee ? Why, just lose his soul ! There is no notion more foolish, wicked and disastrous that there is anything in the Universe without price or equivalent — read Emerson's Essay on Compensations ! So Goethe : Who would possess Goods, let him first be good! Who would have joy, let him calm his sense; Who would have wine let him press ripe grapes; Strengthen your faith, O ye who would find miracle! Riches we wish to get, yet remain spendthrifts still; We would have health and yet still use our bodies ill; Bafflers of our own prayers from youth to life's last scenes. We would have inward peace, yet will not look within; We would have misery cease, yet will not cease from sin; We want all pleasant ends, but will use no harsh means. We do not what we ought, what we ought not we do. And lean upon the thought that chance will bring us through; But our own acts, for good or ill, are mightier powers. M.Arnold, But will some one object that we have proved no more than that Man's Ideal of God is just ? Pope then shall describe to us how Man from God shall Snatch from His hand the Balance and the Rod, Re-judge his Justice, be the God of God. Prophetic Art 133 V. Saklvdwtion. Having discovered so much of Man, Nature and God, shall we not formulate it all into a coherent form or creed ? Although at this word we shudder involuntarily (terrified at the con- troversies and persecutions among Christians) reflec- tion shows that an intelligent being cannot under- stand a thing without first stating it clearly. And as a matter of fact, no writer or religious body has es- caped having one, implied, if not expressed. None could long remain among the Unitarians, the most liberal and creedless of bodies, who was not in sub- stantial agreement with it. So a threefold cosmology was implied by the vague Hindu and Egyptian Tri- ads, one seven-fold in Plotinos's Enneades; nine- fold in the Norse Tales and Eddas, and Dionysios the Areopagite, which later furnished Dante with a stage setting for his great work; ten-fold in the Ka- balah's Sephiroth, and the Persian Sufi Jami. Unavoidable as Creeds therefore are, no man can be entirely sincere until he have made his own, how- ever simple it be, as Lanier's Father, Self, and Love or Holmes's Love only. Matthew Arnold was satis- fied with Duty and Culture ; as Carlyle with Work. I believe in Physical Health, Cleanliness, Temperance, and ut- ter Purity in thought, word and deed. And in Truth, Honesty, Accuracy and Scholarship; Which de- mands reason for all things, and without regret yields its own opi- nion if disproved; Which tolerates all conflifting opinions; Which leads to Art, Literature and Science; Which in Earnestness and Candor perfects all human powers. I believe in Love, the Father and Destiny of all things. Light of light. Fragrance of fragrance. Beauty of beauty; Who working 134 Prophetic Art both here and beyond is inexorably just, and therefore is the Com- forter of the Afflifted and the Avenger of the Evil to the thou- sandth generation; Who leads by conscience within myself to the Kingdom of Heaven, Which only the humble can inherit, and which shall have no end. Forever and ever. Amen. But for each man to insist on his own creed des- troys all social fellowship, which practical exigency enforces a general external creed which in turn de- mands from every man of intelHgence his private interpretation of it. Yet there is, in practice, a cer- tain wavering line which sets the limit of interpre- tation for honor and honesty. But the poet and the mystic, often scorning all external conformity, exer- cise their noblest mission in pointing out the deeper significance ; of the Sacrament, for instance, Holmes This crust is my body, broken for thee. This water, his blood that died on the Tree; (need. The Holy Supper is kept indeed in whatso we share with another's And Whittier interprets the Trinity as Love, Na- ture and Spirit. Of course, there is a type of narrow, materialistic unreflective — usually uneducated — minds who have never looked within and seen no moral plan inde- pendent of all creed, who says Without that, all's dark for man; that or nothing I believe. for him there is nothing but (Matthew Arnold) For God's sake, believe it then. But how much saner are the words of Whittier, To do Thy will is more than praise, as words are less than deeds. And simple trust can find Thy ways we miss with chart of creeds Thy litanies sweet offices of love and gratitude. Thy sacramental liturgies, the joy of doing good. Prophetic Art 135 No doubt that an intellectual being like man finds it a great temptation to over-value good intentions and creeds, and simply to forget practicing them. Goethe keenly felt this absurdity. Unfortunately as soon as a man hears Words he thinks That something can and must be meant by them. How splendid a dispute do Words afFord for us! May not whole systems of philosophy thereon be built ? And who can fail to find an object for his faith with them. For who from Words a Jot was ever known to steal ? None has expressed these follies more pungently than the deeply spiritual De Genestet : Of course, none can be a good Christian at heart Who does not attend the Sermons of myself ! As much as you may please, investigate; but not for one moment dare you forget that which you are expected to corroborate! For otherwise no salvation here or beyond ! This the result; all else proceeds from sources diabolic! thorns! Rub the Dogmatic Rose the wrong way, and you shall feel its How well he compares the liberal investigator to Columbus, crossing the seas in the sublime hope of discovering a continent, guided by the stars. Ah, Theology, thou canst not give nor take What gives to Man, or takes from him eternal bliss. Theology, thinks Rossetti, is bad enough; but The- ometry, how absurd ! Pope well says. For forms of government let fools contend — Whate'er is best administered is best. So also with dogmas ; let us have the life — the rest Is but leather and prunello. Nekrassow does not hesitate to point out the immor- alities of many dogmas ; Mrs Browning tells of the respectable people who manage to break hearts, and Sit still in easy chairs, and damn the general world for standing up ! 136 Prophetic Art Summarizing, Salvation is not by Creeds but by Deeds. Of course, the Ideal is to have both ; but if you may have but one of these, on whose side would you stand — S. Paul's or S. James'? With S. Paul stands only Browning, who owes most of his popu- larity to the vicarious doctrine that Rabbi Ben Ezra's and Abt Vogler's unaccomplished ideals and inten- tions will save them; he dares to purposely condemn Spite of this flesh to-day I strove, made head, gained ground. Browning, therefore, as the outspoken opponent of Attainment, the root of Civilization and Spirituality, is really the Apostle of Immorality. But with S. James stand all the noble and holy of the race. Above all, Jesus, with his Parable of the Two Sons, well paraphrased by Australian Goodchild And if asked where the Devil finds most recruits To people the vast domains of Hell, I should say from the ranks of the selfish brutes Who flatter their conscience by meaning well. The Persian prophet Nizami says A love-less, rough-spoken efficient servant is better than a loving fool; let love exhibit itself by beautiful deeds; what care I for love that manifests itself by its opposite ? Fierce was the anger of Allah, bitter his warning by his prophet Jami, lest the Misbelieving even Be My Prophets who fulfil, knowing not My Word, My Will. The Infant Don Manuel utters a memorable word: If thou wouldest avoid disaster never heed what men will say. Look only at their deeds, at what occurs. Good deeds are the point of contact Arnold found with the Revolutionary Methods he disapproved of If these are yonrs — God knows it, I am with you. Prophetic Art 137 Perhaps you will ask. What has all this to do with the Transcendence of God ? Why, here It is, by Deeds realized, objectified, incarnated in man, ever more and more tending to make of him a God going about in the flesh, as the early Christian Fa- thers said. And Tennyson expresses it thus : And so the Word had breath and wrought. By human hands the creed of creeds. In loveliness of perfeft deeds. More strong than all poetic thought. Will the impending Transcendence of God ever be better expressed than by Tennyson ? Ring out, wild bells. Ring out the old, ring in the new; Ring out the false, ring in the true. Ring out the grief that saps the mind. Ring out the feud of rich and poor. Ring in redress for all Mankind. Ring out the want, the care, the sin. The faithless coldness of the times; Ring out, ring out my mournful rhyme*. But ring the fuller minstrel in. Ring in the valiant Man and free. The larger heart, the kindher hand: Ring out the darkness of the land. Ring in the Christ that is to be — the God yet Transcendent. BOOK IV Message gf Great Dramas OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS 1 39 Book IV. Mess&|>e qf Great Dramas. Introduction. So far we have discussed the nature of Prophecy. We must now proceed to examine the Prophecy of the world. An endless and terrible attempt, but not impossible, in this last century, for a man equipped with several of the more important languages, and in one of the larger libraries. Indeed, the task is not unusual, since no intelligent man can think about the ulterior problem of life without making a pre- liminary estimate of the nature of Sanity and Ration- ality as applied to literature. But usually the infer- ences were from material accessible in one language only, while this book is a conscientious attempt to cover the literature of the whole world, to assure ourselves that the validity of our conclusions shall depend on a Sanity not merely tribal, national, or even continental, but cosmopolitan, and of all ages. And further to insure objective validity for our con- clusions, we shall in the Fourth Book state them in language not our own, but of the greatest lyric poets. But before we can talk about conclusions, we must find the generalizations on which they may be based. 140 OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS We will therefore examine carefully the more strictly soteriological works of the greatest writers, and see what each of them said of the purpose of this life, and its moral issues. We must, moreover, introduce a distinction be- tween the great world-dramas dealing chiefly with human salvation, whose outlines we are to scan. They fall into two great groups : elaborations of legends, and dramas of original plot. Elaboration of Legends are Job, Kschemis- vara's Haritschandra, the Promethean dramas, Plato's Republic, Allghierl's Divine Comedy, Cal- deron's Prodigious Magician, Goethe's Faust, Qui- net's Ahasverus, Longfellow's Golden Legend, Tennyson's Holy Grail, Hardy's Dynasts, Moody's Masque of Judgment, among many others which might be studied, such as the Izdubar Epic, Homer's Odyssey and Virgil's JEneid, whose chief objects seem other than literary — political, historical or religious. Dramas of Original Plot, are Kebes' Picture, Augustine's City of God, Bunyan's Pilgrim's Prog- ress, Spenser's Faery Queen, Byron's Manfred, Ibsen's Brand, Victor Hugo's God, Tolstoi's Power of Darkness, Madach's Tragedy of Humanity, Wllbrandt's Master of Palmyra, Campoamor's Universal Drama, among many others-. We are at the end of a long journey. What posi- tion have we attained? What are the fruits of these great poems? They are so manifold, they cannot be reduced to a formula, a maxim. OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS I4I Job teaches (i) moral trial, (2) disinterested love, (3) confidence in the inner light, (4) scientific humility : and trust in God. The Haritschandra Legend teaches (i) the sacredness of a promise, (2) duty before affection, and (3) magnanimity and generosity. The Prometheus Bound teaches ( i ) mind versus passion; (2) the supremacy of the rational over the irrational nature; (3) avoidance of fate by con- trivance; and (4) the Divinity of Man versus Heaven and Hell. The Prometheus Unbound teaches ( i ) the lesson of pain, forgiveness; (2) the search of the intellect after the truth; (3) Tyranny-Custom, Superstition, Passion to be destroyed: the attainment of a moral character. Plato's Republic teaches, (i) scientific govern- ment versus practical corruption; (2) science versus custom. The Divine Comedy, if It teaches anything, sets forth moral culture as salvation. Calderon's 'Prodigious Magician' shows that the failure of every other natural method of progress proves the verldiclty of the Christian religion. The Faust exemplifies divine discontent. The Faery Queen tells of the possible beauty of holiness. IA.2 OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS The Golden Legend sets forth beauty of self- sacrifice, but the duty to refuse it. The Holy Grail teaches that without Purity none shall see God. The Picture teaches (i) culture, (2) virtue, (3) happiness, and (4) sobriety. The City of God foreshadows the progress of Truth. Manfred illustrates the danger of failing when the battle is won. The Power of Darkness illustrates the moral sin that leads to sin, and that there is only one way out, frank and glad confession. Krasinsky's 'Infernal Comedy' shows that poetic humanitarian dreams result in misfortunes to those we love, and blindness of one's own powers. Democ- racy is disgusting; aristocracy is effete and treacher- ous. Nothing remains but the Christian religion. Hugo's poem, God, symbolizes the stages of mind of man, and shows that only under rationalism, the proper use of the reason, can man be fully himself. Brand teaches self-consecration to God. Before we consider the climax of these recent in- terpretations of human destiny let us, however, review the prophetic utterances we have so far con- sidered. OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS 1 43 Hungary's hypocritical arrogance voices itself in Madach's ruin of knowledge and culture, and asser- tion of blind faith and needless struggle. France's unstable joy of life produces a culture whose gain, alas, is only for our descendants, in Quinet's 'Ahasverus.' England's materialistic practicality sees in human crises the paroxysms of an Unconscious Will, of which men are but the deceived puppets, in Hardy's 'Dynasts.' William Vaughan Moody's 'Masque of Judg- ment' asserts that passions are divine only if con- trolled; if uncontrolled, they are suicidal. These are the true Devil and God — self-control. Longest we will linger with the Spanish dream of expiation, in Campoamor's 'Universal Drama,' but not stay with it, for however iridescent it be, its very imaginative splendor shows that it is but a dream. Germany's devotion and sentimentality alone un- locks the problems of the hereafter, in teaching the necessity of change for progress; of death for res- urrection, in Wilbrandt's 'Master of Palmyra.' Shall we seek to unite all these aspects of life in some one view? If any such answer can be given, it must be this, spiritual culture, — the "culture" implying divine dis- content, and the word "spiritual" insisting that God is yet to be all in all. 144 OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS The Book qf Job. Archaic In language, obscure and sublime In utter- ance, the Book of Job, without known author or date, is handed down from the grey ages of Babylo- nian literature, together with the great Izdubar, and the Babel legends. That It has suffered alteration there Is little doubt. That the Elihu speech Is a later addition is evident from its not being mentioned be- fore or after, and from its misapprehension of the point at issue, blaming Job whereas God really up- holds him, and destroys the original plan of argu- ment — so it better be omitted. To relate the Job story were needless, to admire its rhetoric were superfluous. To get the gist of it perhaps the best method will be to present succes- sively the various aspects of the Drama. I. A man is perfect only after he has withstood temptation. Temptation Is the touchstone which differentiates principle from theory. The Innocence of the Infant and that of the saint are also distin- guished by temptation, that of the saint being so much more valuable than the Infant's just in this, that vague possiblHtles are by the heat of the fire transfused into actualities. Not only in the moral sphere is a test necessary. No sailor would trust himself into an untried ship. It is only by the fiery heat and icy coid of the tempering process that the OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS 1 45 iron becomes steel. So the road to holiness lies through suffering and endurance, the tempering of the soul. So were all the Saviours tested. 11. The first part of the temptation of Job took place to ascertain whether Job 'doth serve God for naught'. So everything that Job owns Is taken from him: wealth, family, friends. His faithful wife ad- vises him to 'curse God and die'. But he answers rightly, 'Shall I receive good at the hand of the Lord, and shall I not receive evil? Blessed be the name of the Lord'. 'In all this'. Is It said, 'did not Job sin with his lips'. Job's position Is that of disinterested love, such as that of Fenelon. 'Though he slay me, yet win I trust In him. Naked came I out of my mother's womb, and naked shall I return thither; the Lord gave, and the Lord has taken away, blessed be the name of the Lord.' For, after all, what right has man to more than his own life, as long as It pleases God to grant It? Shall we complain of the evil, without thanking for the good ? The material of the temptation was loss of all he possessed. The purpose of the temptation was to see whether he would sin against God in heart or tongue. The victory of the temptation was to remain trust- ful In God, the real owner of all things, of whom men are only stewards — in two words, disinterested love. IIL The second part of the temptation of Job was the ascertainment whether he trusted his con- science sufBciently to enable him to follow the divine guiding light within, his consciousness of innocency, 146 OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS in spite of the unanimous and instant accusation of the whole world, as represented to him by his three friends. Not till a man has implicit confidence in his conscience's inner light, can he expect to be led by it perfectly. Some such a test is an inevitable stage in the soul's development. That this was the real moot-point of the tempta- tion is shown by God's condemnation of Job's friends, who in other respects sinned not; for it could certainly not be sinful to say that God punishes evil, and rewards good I Their sin lay in forcing a man's conscience. The material of the temptation was the unanimous contrary verdict of the world. The purpose of the temptation was to test con- science as an arbiter of appeal. The victory of the temptation lay in Job's utter reliance on his consciousness of innocence in the face of the whole world. IV. The third part of Job's temptation consisted in the human failing of generalizing before all the facts are known. It was scientific method that was at Issue, Job's friends had dogmas about God's ways and practices glibly at their tongues' ends. They said 'Thou must have sinned because God has acted thus.' Job himself did not sin, if he did go as far as a man well may without sinning: he suffered griev- ously, and cried out, Why must I suffer? But this sin of even questioning he purged himself of in this that he said, 'I will lay my hand upon my mouth.' This oriental figure describes exactly his ceasing even to question God's ways: 'Once have I spoken, but OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS 147 I will not answer; yea, twice, but I will proceed no further.' How can a man question the ways of God, seeing God alone knows everything? Be scientific; hesitate to deduce universal laws before you have gathered all the facts. Being human, we cannot hope to gather all, and therefore should remain humble, remembering that no general principle can be more than provisional or tentative. To know all would be to understand all. But till then scientific humility is in order. The material of the temptation was bitter physical pain and degradation, boils. The purpose of the temptation was scientific hu- mility. The victory of the temptation was recognition of God's knowledge, and consequent superior wisdom. V. The two practical lessons of the result of the temptation are i, Proof that God will avenge the injuries done to his saints while in affliction; and 2, that after his saints are through with their trial he will provide for them abundantly in tender love. The Book of Job describes in archaic and sub- limely poetic language the spiritual degrees through which all souls must, sooner or later, pass. The First Degree Is the Everlasting Covenant be- tween a Soul and Its God, or Consecration of all things to divine objects. The Second Degree is unswerving fidelity to the Inner Intelligence. The Third Degree is Scientific Humility, the first step towards the learning of all things — a knowledge with which God rewards all his saints. OUTLINES or GREAT DRAMAS Kschemisvara's Haritschandra The legend of Harltschandra Is old, and has at- tracted universal attention. In one form it appears in the Aitareya Brahmana (VII: 13-18). In a form closer to that of Kschemisvara's drama it appears in the Markandeya Purana, vii. and viii. Also modern Indian dramatists have been attracted to it; for K. Chattopadhyaya and Shrider have constructed new forms of it. But just as Goethe wrote the clas- sical form of the Faust Legend, so did Kschemisvara write that of Harltschandra. In his hands it attains a soteriological form, and deserves the most appre- ciative study. So marked was this that the modern writers, following another somewhat older version translated by Roberts, have seen In It a parallel to the book of Job. Here it Is related that once the Gods and the pious mendicants were met together In Indra's heaven, and debated whether there existed In the world a per- fectly virtuous prince. Vasishta Insisted that his pupil Harltschandra was such an one. Siva, how- ever, who was present in the form of VIswamltra, contended that the latter's virtue would not be able to stand serious trials, and he himself would tempt him. If the Gods would permit it. The proposal was accepted; and Harltschandra suffered grievously but OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS 1 49 victoriously. In Roberts's form the story differs from that of Kschemisvara, and is here not accepted as the classical form of the story both because it is recent, evidently borrowed from the Babylonian Job-legend, and inferior from a dramatic standpoint. But the very fact that such an introduction was written testi- fies to a recognition of the soteriological significance of Kschemisvara's drama. The story is this: The house-priest of King Haritschandra has commanded him to keep awake during the nights. His wife supposes he is unfaithful to her, but when the house-priest sends a penitent to bless them both, she begs for forgiveness. The King, for recreation, goes hunting. Ganesa, the God of Obstacles, in order to keep Viswamitra, a noted as- cetic, from conquering heaven by his penitence, as- sumes the form of a boar. Haritschandra, hunting him, is led to the place where Viswamitra is sacri- ficing. By the power of his sacrifice he has attracted the Magic Powers which lament in piteous fashion that they are to be made subject to Viswamitra. Haritschandra, hearing their complaints from far, interrupts Viswamitra. The latter is angered at the interruption, and through his anger loses the whole virtue of the sacrifice. He is about to curse Harits- chandra for this when the latter beseeches forgive- ness, which is granted to him on condition that he give Viswamitra (i) all his wealth; (2) the earth, and (3) 100,000 pieces of gold besides, which must not come from the Earth, that he has already given away. Haritschandra then and there resigns his 150 OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS kingdom (the earth) and his wealth, and demands one month's time to secure the money. Viswamitra grants it, but determines to insist on the payment in order to keep Haritschandra in the path of truth. The latter had planned to get the money from Vana- sari, the city of Siva, but is disappointed. At the expiration of the term Viswamitra becomes angry once more, and is on the point of uttering the curse. Haritschandra decides to sell himself as a slave, but nobody will buy him at the price. The Queen Saibiya insists that she and her little son have a right to be sold first. A teacher and his son come to buy her, but Haritschandra will not accept the money, 50,000 pieces of gold, and offers himself instead of her. Saibiya, however, beseeches the Teacher not to pass her by, but to insist on taking her as a slave. The Teacher, saying that it was not fitting that he should look on at the sadness of the parting of the King and Queen, leaves behind his pupil Kaundinya. After some delay the latter angrily commands Saibiya to follow him, and when her little son seeks to hold her back Kaundinya angrily throws him to the ground. The latter asks Haritschandra why his mother should be led away; Haritschandra turns away in tears. Kausika appears and demands his money, refusing the half. As he speaks, the Gods are heard express- ing their disgust at his hardness. He curses them to re-birth — which actually takes place, as the five Pan- davas, the heroes of the Mahabharata. No hope is left, and since Kausika once more refuses half the money, Haritschandra offers himself for sale. The OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS 151 God Dharma (Righteousness, Law) in the form of an undertaker, belonging to the Pariahs, offers to buy him, and after Haritschandra's vainly offering to sell himself to Kausika, he consummates the bar- gain, and offers the whole to Kausika. He says: "Now I owe the Brahmin nothing more, am free from the curse, and did not forsake the truth of what I said." The God Dharma with joy cries out to him- self, "No such deed was ever known or heard of." As slave, and guardian of the dead-house, Harits- chandra defends it from the birds, and when Dhar- ma, dressed as a Brahmin, comes to him and asks him to see that he be not disturbed at a sacrifice which he was about to offer, Haritschandra agrees to do so, but only as far as his duty will permit him to do so. The Magic Powers then arrive and de- clare that now they are in his power; but Haritschan- dra orders them to go to Viswamitra-Kausika, in order to make up for his loss. Dharma returns and offers Haritschandra a reward, but the latter declares he cannot, as a slave, receive it; even though it be sufficient to free him and his wife. Yet he will receive the treasure on the part of his master. Dhar- ma exclaims to himself : "How is he constant ! What nobility of character ! Mountains may tremble when, at the end of an earth-age, the wind uproots them; but never, not even in distress, wavers the changeless mind of determined men !" As he is about to depart, the King says : "Remember me when it is a question of misfortune." Dharma answers, "The Gods will be mindful of thee." It is his duty to refuse burial 152 OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS to those who do not pay a fee ; when his wife comes to bury her little son, who has died from bad treat- ment, his sense of duty forces him to refuse him burial, though his wife pleads with him and recog- nizes him. At the extreme moment a rain of flowers falls, and the God Dharma appears, justifies his actions, and confers the Eternal Worlds on Harits- chandra, making him a coadjutor of Brahma, restor- ing to life Rohisatva, his son. Haritschandra as- cends in the heavenly chariot and sees how Kausika, rejoiced at the receipt of the Magical Powers, has returned the Kingdom to Haritschandra's ministers. Dharma says : "What Kausika did, took place as a trial of thy love of truth; not because he sought thy kingdom." Rohisatva is anointed "World-ruler." Haritschandra's former subjects are desperate at the thought of losing him forever, and Haritschandra prays Dharma to grant that all the merit of his own good works may be given his subjects that they may attain the heaven destined for himself. Dharma an- swers that by giving away the merit of his good works he has doubled them, and both his subjects and he himself shall attain Brahma's heaven. He asks If Haritschandra has any other favor to ask. The latter replies that all he could desire Is his; and as he ascends heavenwards he prays that "May life bring many joys to good men; "May earth be rich with fruits, and the King be victorious, "And whatever may be laudable In the works of a poet, OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS 1 53 "Even if it be but a grain, may it be appreciated in a i'riendly spirit by those who shall hear the poet." This drama, written with power and consummate skill, shares with Cudraka's Mricchakatika the honor of the first rank among Hindu dramas. But it is also a noble incentive to the loftiest moral life. ( 1 ) The first lesson is truth, not only as veracity, but as faithfulness in fulfilling an oath or promise. (2) In the second place, it insists that duty shall be fulfilled honestly in spite of the dearest feelings of the heart. (3) In the third place, it enforces magnanimity in generosity and self-sacrifice. Verily, Haritschandra needs not the reward of admission to Brahma's heaven; as the Pariah-slave he has achieved divinity. 154 OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS Aeschylos* Prometheus Bound. The argument of Aischulos' masterpiece is simple. Prometheus has, by his attention to the wants of men, in supplying them with all arts through the gift of fire, provoked the anger of Zeus, and is consequently bound down in a cleft of the rock in a distant desert of Scythia, by Hephaistos, with Strength and Force. To the sympathetic Chorus he relates his evil plight, and advises Oceanos not to carry out his intention of endeavouring to persuade Zeus to free him, lest Zeus become angry with Oceanos also. When lo arrives he prophesies to her both her past and future sufferings and wanderings, explaining to her that it shall be through the thirteenth descendant of herself, Herakles, that Zeus shall be destroyed in the same manner as he destroyed Kronos. Through Hermes, Zeus insists on knowing just how this shall occur; but Prometheus, who is to be saved by keeping just this secret, refuses, and is swept into the abyss amidst terrific hurricane and earth-quake. What is the spiritual gist of this drama? Buckley says that it is "the sublimest drama of antiquity. The Titan majesty of mankind had been infringed by the new Gods of Olympus, and Pro- metheus appeared as their protector, the assertor of their rights. Opposed to a new aristocracy, he was OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS 1 55 Still the supreme power of the old one. In the true spirit of the old aristocracy he laboured for the bene- fit of his weaker dependants. The Olympian Gods, like the parvenus of Aristotle, are everywhere rep- resented as oppressing mankind, and each other. Moreover, Prometheus represents the intellectual as- cendancy of mankind over the creation, the power of moral progress in opposition to physical strength and conventional resources. The imprudence of Jove is hereafter to destroy that power, in the haughtiness of which he had thought fit to spurn the god of wis- dom from him. Much as I am disinclined to alle- gorical interpreters and interpretation, still it can not but seem a magnificent impersonification of mind struggling against circumstances, intellect against force, providence against fate. And the very fatal- ism of the play is pleasing. His very philanthropy, his inability to do further good, force from him the groan of the hero, but, as the good man meets death so does he meet pain, conscious that there is some- thing yet to come." Yet Buckley does not seem to have grasped the full significance and power of the play. The point is not so much struggle against fate as the relation between fate, intelligent foresight, and materialistic passion. The problem is not defined sharply, for with it is the Greek ideal of to kalon, i.e., social suc- cess, which blames Prometheus for offending against the powers that be, against ruling authority, for being so proud as not to reverence Adrasteia — or, to put it plainly, for lack of social subservience, for a 156 OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS Greek was by nature a fawning animal. This mars indeed the moral problem, if indeed Aischulos had not intended to utter in this play the first protest against the Greek standard of social success, and the first cry of individuality, of conscience, taken up again by Sokrates and Aristotle. And indeed one of the lessons of the play is intelligent foresight and guidance, or the assertion of rationality as against blind fatalistic passion. This, of course, is the mean- ing of Plato's Republic, though this reverses Sokra- tes' individualism; the end of the individual being to form part of a state, instead of its being the state's to produce perfect individuals. Assuming, then, that Aischulos meant the Chorus's moral standard of so- cial subservience merely as a foil to the heroic indi- vidualism of Prometheus, the drama voiced both the rationalism of Plato with the individualism of Sok- rates. The first lesson of the drama is, then, Individ- uality vs. Social Success. Individuality, however, necessarily implies intelli- gence, as contrasted with the sub-rational nature of the affections, passions, and sensations (Plato's rationahsm). Here we see Hephaistos chaining Prometheus, through fear of Zeus, though with tears in his eyes, for relationship and intimacy are of great power. This is mind vs. the affections. Next we see Prometheus despising whatever pains can be in- flicted : Wherefore let the doubly-pointed wreath of his fire be hurled at me, and either be torn piecemeal by thunder, and spasm of savage blasts, and fling my body back into Tartarus, with a whirl into the stern OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS 1 57 eddies of Necessity. The secret of this stern defiance is that yet by no possible means shall he visit me with death. If Zeus rules, it is only for a span of time. He himself will endure. There is an eternal part of him, the mind, that will remain in spite of the utmost physical torments. He is more than his body. He can survive it all. He is Mind, the Mind is him. This is mind vs. sensation. Next we see Zeus, who is to fall through a self-indulgent marriage. Here is mind vs. passion. The second lesson of the drama is, then, stoicism, assertion of the rational over the sub-rational nature of affections, sensations, passions. But the assertion of the rational nature implies in- telligence, thro' which it is possible to foresee future conditions and to guide the present ones so as to con- form to them. The drama speaks in strong terms of Fate. Art is less powerful than Necessity. Is even Zeus less powerful than these, the triform Fates, and the remembering Furies? Most certainly he cannot, at any rate, escape his doom. Fate is above even Zeus. When he dispossessed the Titans it was only by decree of Fate, how it was destined that not by main force, nor by the strong hand, but by craft should the victors prevail. So is Zeus fated to be dispossessed by his own senseless counsels. But every one of these dooms contains this, that not by force but by intelligent foresight and calculation the victor should prevail. That is the point of Prometheus' refusal to tell how the catastrophe was to occur. Had Jove known this, he would probably have averted the 158 OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS event by intelligent action. In the earlier struggle the Titans had represented force as against Prome- theus' wise advice to Jove. But now this lacked, and Jove himself was to become guilty of the unpardon- able sin of stupidity. So Prometheus fears not his foes' enmity, to whom comes no evil unforeseen. Hence he can avoid and master it. This same argu- ment robs Hermes' threats of their power. Besides, the curse (an intelligible entity) of Kronos, or jus- tice, is to avenge itself. Even Hermes understands the value of foresight when he warns the Chorus, that will not depart from Prometheus' side, that by casting themselves into foreseen calamities they shall be caught in the impervious snares and net of Ate, making the third lesson of the drama the avoidance of doom by foresight of rational reflection and calcu- lation. If, then, Fate can be avoided by wisdom, then is Fate the doom of the sub-rational creation and na- ture. To be freed demands only mental development and education. So Prometheus, Human Mind in Shelley's apposite words, gives men, by means of fire, all arts and science. Yet for men who are not intelli- gent enough to avert fate it is better not to foresee doom — so Prometheus blesses them also with false hopes. He hesitates to tell lo of her future, for it is better not to learn the limits of suffering unless one be strong enough to avert it. It is, therefore, by mental individuality, by the ability to remember and foresee and to refrain from uttering knowledge, OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS 1 59 that a human being can defy the Gods collectively, and afford to suffer for generations, since none can rob him of his individuality and eternity unless he himself reveal the secret. The fourth lesson of the drama is, then, the possibility for man of defying unrighteousness were it even clothed with divine power. The drama represents the struggle of rationaliza- tion or moralization in the human being and race, and points out how man may attain divinity by mastering Fate and conforming to his Destiny. l6o OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS Shelley's Prometheus Unbound. Interpretations of this drama have been sufficiently differing to permit us free treatment. Of course, from Shelley's own Introduction, two things are clear: that Prometheus is the type of ideal Man, the highest perfection of moral and intellectual nature, impelled by the purest and truest motives to the best and noblest ends, and that it was Shelley's purpose to familiarize the highly refined imagination of the more select classes of poetical readers with beautiful idealisms of moral excellence as a means of carry- ing out his passion for reforming the world. In this constructive attitude, Shelley had progressed beyond Byron, who had not the strength to attain to it. The plot is simple. Prometheus is discovered bound to the Caucasian precipice, Panthea and lone sitting at his feet. Dawn is breaking. Prometheus groans in his pain: but it has not been useless. "I speak in grief, not exultation, for I hate no more as then ere misery made me wise." He has learnt the constructive attitude, and would recall the curse he had launched against Jupiter when first bound to the rock. He commands the spirits of the dead to repeat that curse, because if any of the living spirits repeated it, Jupiter might hear, and afflict the Earth more grievously. The curse is recited by the phantasm OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS l6l of Jupiter, and Prometheus retracts it, "I wish no living thing to suffer pain." The three Furies arrive to torture him, but are held back by Mercury, who brings a last proposition from Jupiter, that is rejected like all the others. The Furies are let loose upon him, but he stands firm. Panthea, peeping from her veil, sees a woeful sight : a youth with patient looks nailed to a crucifix. This appears as a final torture, to prove to Prometheus that in spite of all his efforts men will always be unjust. But the Spirits of the Mind of Man come to comfort him, telling of the good men will have done, and he says, "I fain would be what it is my destiny to be, the Saviour and the Strength of suffering Man." The second act opens in a lovely vale in the Indian Caucasus. Asia, the beloved of Prometheus, is dis- covered greeting the advent of Spring. Panthea comes to lead her to Prometheus, and a Dream leads them over hill and vale. They pass through a forest intermingled with rocks and caverns. Two young Fauns listen to the Chorus of Spirits, and tell each other about their nature. Asia and Panthea reach a pinnacle of rock, whence they are led by Spirits to the depths of the Earth, the cave of Demogorgon, a tremendous gloom. Asia asks him about the Cre- ator and Sustainer of the world. Demogorgon an- swers laconically. God made the world and all beau- tiful things. To the question, who made the Evil, he answers "He reigns." Is Jove, too, only a slave? "All Spirits are enslaved which serve things evil: thou knowest if Jupiter be such, or no." Eternal l6z OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS Love alone is not subject to Fate, Time, Occasion, Change. The Spirit of the Destined Hour is ready to start. They follow him. The Car pauses within a Cloud on the top of a mountain. As they ride up- ward, Asia is transfigured — "love makes the reptile equal to the God." After listening to a Voice in the air, Panthea utters the closing hymn of Human- ity, which has now blossomed into a diviner day. The third act opens in Olympus. Jupiter at last thinks himself the Supreme Spirit when the Spirit of the Hour arrives, and Demogorgon throws Jupiter down into the abyss. Apollo tells all about this event to Ocean, who departs when he hears the unpastured sea hungering for calm. In the Caucasus, Hercules unbinds Prometheus, saying, "Most glorious among Spirits ! Thus doth Strength to Wisdom, Courage, and long-suffering Love, and Thee, the form they animate, minister like a slave." Prometheus plans the kind of life he will lead, with Asia near him, in a cave, where shall also be "Painting, Sculpture and rapt Poesy, and Arts, though unimagined yet to be . . . swift shapes and sounds which grow more fair as man grows wise and kind." He rewards the Spirit of the Hour with a shell. In the forest is seen the opening of their cave, lone and Panthea describing their joy, while the Spirit of the Earth embraces Asia. Then arrives the Spirit of the Hour, telling of the revolution that has taken place on earth in consequence of the fall of Jupiter. Tyranny, Cus- tom, Passion, Superstition are passed away, and "The Man remains, sceptreless, free, uncircura- OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS 1 63 scribed, but Man; equal, unclassed, tribeless, and nationless, exempt from awe, worship, degree, the king over himself, just, gentle, wise, but Man." The last act is an indescribably beautiful dramatic lyric describing the rejoicing of the Spirits, Hours, Earth, Moon. Finally, Demogorgon addresses in turn every form of living being, ending with what might be called the Creed of the new order of things. "Gentleness, Virtue, Wisdom and Endurance; To suffer woes which hope thinks infinite ; To forgive wrongs darker than death or night; To defy power which seems omnipotent; Neither to change, nor falter, nor repent; This, like thy glory, Titan, is to be Good, great and joyous, beautiful and free, This is alone Life, Joy, Empire and Victory." Jupiter represents the traditional God of supersti- tion, dogma, and priest-craft, in whose Name lies were told, blood shed, and the poor oppressed. De- mogorgon, as the name implies, represents the fear which the people inspire when they rise up in their might against religious enslavement; morality is im- Dossible without freedom. lone and Panthea, who watch over the struggle-development of human char- acter, represent, respectively, Greek and universal life and culture. Prometheus, in the first act, repre- sents Man, as a moral being, learning the lesson of pain: forgiveness — i.e., conformity to the will of God. Why avenge ? Two wrongs do not make one right. The ideal is to be kind even when injured. Asia (the cradle of civilization) represents the hu- 164 OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS man intellect searching for the truth, and, in the course of this effort, going down to the very bottom of Hell to learn the truths of life. Only when the chastened soul and the educated mind are united will the perfect state occur. Not until the representative individual man has found himself, is perfected, can the amelioration in society take place, as it forms itself around individuals. Then Tyranny, Custom, Superstition and Passion are to give way to Equal- ity, Reason, lustless Love and all the Virtues. OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS 1 65 Other Promethean Dr&mas. The Prometheus stories constitute a veritable cycle of legends, and it is not yet closed. Quinet shows the reason of this. The name itself means 'prophet,' and is, therefore, of persistent not to say 'eternal' interest. Moreover, the Prometheus Legend has been gathering momentum, and is gradually piecing itself together to some form of completeness. For the Greek Legend was necessarily incomplete; while ^schylos was forced to punish him, he could neither free him (which would have involved defeat for the Olympians, who, in ^Eschylos's day, were firmly entrenched in orthodox reverence), nor kill him (which would have involved the ruin of humanity, which, in ^schylos's day, was quite flourishing). Hence he was forced to leave him in torment. The chief solutions have been Shelley's (a poetic Greek Socialism), Quinet's (the advent of Christian Sal- vation), and Gilkin's (a monistic absorption into the universal divinity, a Nirvana, implying the evapora- tion of humanity, and, therefore, an unsatisfactory unhistorical solution) . Before we examine these suggested solutions we must notice other work on the subject. Calderon first attacked it. That Calderon at- 1 66 OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS tacked the Promethean myth showed his soteriologi- cal interest — not by chance did he write the 'Pro- digious Magician.' But his Spanish proclivities to romance, theatrical conventions, and shallowness of circumstance, rob his attempt of permanent value. Goethe's attempt, while using Calderon's, was limited to Prometheus's creative activity, and does not even begin to deal with the solution of the myth. However, it is the most original contribution to its commencement. Goethe came to write it from his fondness for calling Shakespeare and himself Pro- metheuses, because of their creating (literary) char- acters. Oppressed politically, Goethe finds freedom in the worlds he has created by his own activity; he is omnipotent while he keeps within the circle of his activity. He refuses to let his strength become a footstool for the gods. Rather than become a slave he will let his clay statues lack life, which Jupiter offers in return for his homage. Then Minerva opens to him the springs of life. Prome- theus then teaches his men to build huts, and dis- criminate property. The death, by drowning, of Mira, in Arbar's arms. Introduces death, which, how- ever, is explained as the first step to a newer life. Next we must notice Siegf rid Lipnier's 'Unchained Prometheus,' a mythical poem in five songs: the Deliverance, Without Divinities, the Unchained Ones, the Sisters of Fate, and Redemption. At the song of the Fates, Jove and his gods sink out of sight, with the tormenting vulture and the chains. But Prometheus sees the Cross, and the OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS 1 67 love of its disciples, and is willing to be forgotten; but hate and contention arise again, followed by crime, and Prometheus fears he may have to strive against his own children. He then makes a tour through the godless world, and sees the degradation of his offspring, ending at a revolution which collapses because of the treachery of its leaders. Prometheus weeps at the godless world, when he himself had defied the gods. He is, however, comforted by his fellow sufferer, the Christ. The Fates are overcome by Love to Salvation, and it is Prometheus's task, before he can rest, to convert his humanity to Love, the Eternal God, who unifies the strife of all divinities, unto the World- Joy. Quinet's 'Prometheus' has stolen the fire from the Cyclops of Lemnos. Fate decrees punishment. But the Sybils come to comfort him, prophesying the Christ. Finally the archangels Michael and Raphael free Prometheus, who is not convinced till the over- whelmed Olympians come to beg mercy of him. Fi- nally the Seraphim proclaims Love, as the two arch- angels escort Prometheus to the breast of Jehovah, and Hesione, the first woman, who had died at his torment, is resurrected. While this is the most logical solution of the Promethean problem (being the actual historical trend of events), Quinet hardly harmonizes Greek and Christian cosmogony; he grafts one on the other. Gilkin is a philosopher, and he unites Goethe's and iEschylos's parts, concluding with his own start- ling metaphysical solution. 1 68 OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS In the agony of the torturing storm that closes ^schylos's drama, Prometheus loses consciousness. In his trance he beholds a glorious Sphinx, which reveals itself as the very Mercury whom he had spurned; who turns out to have in reality been uni- versal life. "Mirror of thy own anger, I reflected to thy glance the gods thy fury formed." On awak- ing, Prometheus beholds the beauty of the world as the embodiment or caress of universal Love. The Murmurs of the World call on Zeus to reveal him- self in every creature. Prometheus then finds that the Universal Soul of Zeus had revealed itself in himself. "Zeus, how could I have misunderstood Thee I I thought Thee tyrant and torturer, and lo, my jus- tice was Thy justice, my love Thy love; when my cries called for light, it was Thou who soughtest Light and Truth. It was Thou who, in my heart, soughtest the Supreme Being; for I am Thy palpi- tating effort towards Thyself, only, immense Will which scatterest Thyself in the world; and which, suffering at being the World, in tears returnest to Unity." While this solution may be good monistic philoso- phy, it is unsatisfactory in this, that it implies that humanity beholds the truth in a trance only, and then dies by absorption into a Nirvanic union with immanent divinity. Such a solution might be pos- sible for individuals, but not for the race of man, which healthily remains in the objective, and con- tinues to propagate. No solution in which Prome- OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS 1 69 theus dies can be satisfactory, any more than one that pictures him winging his way through the clouds to Paradise. Shelley's dream would be the truest, if he had assigned any cogent reason for the destruc- tion of the old gods ; the appearance of Christianity might have supplied that cause, but would itself have had to give way to a socialization of conditions of life. The Promethean problem has not yet been solved satisfactorily; it is awaiting the great master — genius; but Goethe and ^schylos have said the last word about the first two parts thereof. 170 OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS Plato's Republic. Platonopolis was never realized : the Roman Em- peror entrusted the project to Plotinos, but it mis- carried. Nevertheless it has inspired other men, and as it were incarnated in them. Cicero is the first, in his De Republica. Next is Augustine of Hippo, with his De Civitate Dei: Plato Christianized. Alighieri follows with his De Monarchia, presenting the me- diaeval identification of government with Empire and Papacy. Next is Sir Thomas More with his Utopia, and Bacon with his New Atlantis. Campanella fol- lowed with the City of the Sun (1568- 1639). Har- rington's Oceana, Sir John Eliot's Monarchy of Man, are other essays in the same direction. In modern days, however, this form of prophecy has become very common : the most famous of the mod- ern 'Utopias' being Bellamy's Looking Backward. Besides its literary merit, and besides its impor- tance as a Platonic work, the Republic is noteworthy in that it is his most avowedly constructive venture. It is, at it were, the fruit of Plato's speculations, the bloom of his system. It were hopeless to endeavour to reproduce it in the few pages here consecrated to it. Perhaps the most authoritative outline of it Is Jowett's : Says he, 'The natural divisions are five in number; — ( i) Book I and the first half of Book II OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS 17I down to p. 368, which is introductory: the first book containing a refutation of the popular and sophisti- cal notions of justice, and concluding, like some of the earlier Dialogues, without arriving at any defi- nite results. To this is appended a restatement of the nature of justice according to common opinion, and an answer Is demanded to the question — What is justice, stripped of appearances? The second divi- sion (2) includes the remainder of the second and the whole of the third and fourth Books, which are main- ly occupied with the construction of the first State and the first education. The third division (3) con- sists of the fifth, sixth, and seventh books, in which philosophy rather than justice Is the subject of en- quiry, and the second State is constructed on princi- ples of communism and ruled by philosophers, and the contemplation of the Idea of Good takes the place of the social and political virtues. In the eighth and ninth books (4) the perversions of States and of individuals who correspond to them are reviewed in succession; and the nature of the pleasure and the principle of tyranny are further analysed in the indi- vidual man. The tenth book ( 5 ) Is the conclusion of the whole, in which the relations of philosophy to poetry are finally determined, and the happiness of citizens in this life, which has now been assured, is crowned by the vision of another; the doctrines of transmigration, and the state of souls after death. 'Or a more general division into two parts may be adopted; the first, (Book I-IV) containing the de- scription of a State framed generally in accordance 172 OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS with Hellenic religion and morality, while in the sec- ond (Books V-VIII) the Hellenic state is trans- formed into an ideal kingdom of philosophy, of which all other governments are perversions. These two points of view are really opposed, and the opposition is only thinly veiled by the genius of Plato.' In this connection we should mention what are termed by Morgenstern the 'Paradoxes of the Republic,' the community of property and of fami- lies, the rule of the philosophers, and the analogy of the individual and the State, which is carried very far. Plato condenses his views on certain topics in two phrases, or 'waves of argument.' Until that kings are philosophers, or philosophers are kings, cities will never cease from ill: no, nor the human race; nor will our ideal polity ever come into being. 'The son of Ariston (the best) Is of opinion the best and justest of men is the happiest also, and this is he who is the most royal master over himself; and that the unjust man is he who Is the greatest tyrant of himself and of his State ; and I add further, seen or unseen by Gods or men.' Another peculiarity of Plato's Republic Is the banishment of the poets, as softening and corrupting influences. The reason for this seemed to be that they appealed to the feelings rather than to the rational part of man, besides nar- rating much that is immoral, and useless. The supervision by the state of marriage called 'community of wives' is not so alien from modern scientific notions as it was from the medlasval con- OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS 173 ceptlon. It must be remembered that although Plato's views have been called 'community of wives' from time immemorial, Plato is as far as any modern man from 'community of wives' or polyandry. The lat- ter is an institution existing only among the most sav- age races. Plato pleads not for this but for a scien- tific selection of wives; an extension of science to the fields of reproduction. In this he only prophesies the notions which are very common in these latter days. It is a general opinion to-day that persons who are attacked by certain diseases should not marry, and that some restriction should be placed upon the nu- merous children of those unfit to bear them. The state restricts the lives of 'fallen women,' so that a further supervision would only be a matter of degree, not principle. Of course the exposing of children is indefensible, although physicians practically dispatch children who are born with some fatal blemish. Bet- ter it would be for a child to be exposed than for an idiot to pass a long life In an insane asylum. Be- sides, in hopeless cases, the free use of opium accom- plishes practically what Plato insisted on In his exposing of infants. Geddes and Thompson, among others, attack the problem very much from Plato's standpoint. Better to have less children, but better ones. Child-creating is an art, and also a science, and the most grievous crime which a parent can com- mit against a child is to permit it to be the chance result of self-indulgence. Surely the sooner that those abominable lies concerning the purpose of mar- 174 OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS riage are removed from the minds of the young the better for them. The only hope is in intelligent and serious consideration of those questions which Plato fearlessly advances, and that Jowett is afraid to raise. The day is passed when ignorance and sin could pass as holiness. Serious, prayerful scientific investigation is better than social fiction, both in itself and in its results. Why should children be born un- der conditions which no dog-raiser would permit his dog? The reason that so much has been said on this sub- ject is that it is really only an instance of that principle which underlies the whole Republic. Rational con- trol and guidance : this is to direct the birth of man, the government, as in the hands of the wisest, the philosophers, and this explains Plato's opposition to the poets, as sub-rational only. All these doctrines are of a piece: rational destruction of superstition and custom, and new upbuilding on scientific lines. This was the incentive Plato had to write out his Ideal of a Republic, and is the very reason why he insisted on an intelligent, rather than a 'practical' guidance of the State. Practically, a State may gain by the hushing of reason; but the State exists only for the welfare of the people ; and as long as that is attained it matters not how visionary or theoretic the government be. The spiritual gist of the Republic is now clear. Scientific government, versus practical corruption. Mental, rational, intelligent abandonment of custom and the up-building of the new. It is Science versus OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS 175 Custom, Intelligence versus Habit, as applied to the State. It is only a particular case of the eternal bat- tle within each man, through which he too attains the heights of the ideal. Plato himself insists that Intelligence in life is inseparably bound up with, and is the ground of intelligence in government, and both are bound up with the happiness of and for both. 176 OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS Dante Alighierl's Divina Commedia. So much has been written about the spiritual sense of Dante Alighieri's Divina Commedia that few will question that it possesses one. Yet, like those liter- ary works which have been fortunate enough to awake widespread interest, it may be asked whether those who limited their knowledge and study to it alone may not have come to regard it with false per- spective. The first task must be to recognize the formative influences. i. The first of these was Bruno Latini's poem, which Dante followed with tol- erable fidelity in sketching out the general idea of a passage through Hell, Purgatory and Heaven; an idea which was, in any case, tolerably familiar to the Middle Ages, since this was the basis of miracle plays. 2. The second was contemporary history and sociology. Although this gives point to Alighieri's division and assignment of the various localities, it is already so far out of date as to need a very ex- tensive commentary. 3. The third is careful study of the works of Virgil and Latinlty generally, since in many places where he needs it, either for the meaning or rhyme, he employs Latin words directly. 4. The external misfortunes which drove Alighieri to put into durable form his views and feelings. 5. The scenery near Avignon, and the Rhone, with all OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS 1 77 its rocky grandeur, which may have supplied much material to the Imagery of the Hell. Divesting the Divina Commedia of all the histori- cal trappings, which are in their nature at best illus- trative, and are to the majority of readers long out of date, it may be interesting to glance at the gen- eral conception which underlies the whole, and which would alone have remained unaltered had Alighieri written at another period. In short, what are the permanent, the eternal elements in his work? As a whole it is an allegory of his own repentance, purification and transfiguration. If it be a true alle- gory, it must be also true for all humanity; that is, all the humanity of those who lived In the time of, and shared the views of Dante. He was not able to raise himself above the limitations of party, na- tionality, system of theology and period. The whole is supposed to be a vision that took place during the seven days between Good Friday, 1300, A.D., and the next Friday. The dark forest amidst which he starts is the ignorance of the errors of his youth. He loses the right road and time in sleep. The three animals that seek to frighten him from proceeding are the fleshly lusts. He cannot reach the goal alone, without guidance. Beatrice, divine grace, must send him a leader, Virgil, reason. The Panther is lust; the Lion, pride, and the She- wolf, avarice. Dante cannot return the way he came: sins cannot be undone except by punishment and purification. Reason will take Dante through repentance of sin and purification ; but beyond Grace 178 OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS must lead the human soul to the Beatific Vision. Over the gate of hell stands written: Lasciate ogni speranza, voi che entrate. Hell is despair. It is an amphitheatre-like funnel that extends to the centre of the earth. There are nine circles on terraces on the sides of the amphitheatre, each harboring sinners of a certain class. I. Sins of Ignorance. Circle i. The Limbo Pa- truum. Not actually hell. The pious Jews and Pa- gans. Connected with the lot of those who, having lived without praise and without blame, neither hot nor cold, are condemned to wander eternally on the outside of Acheron, while this first Circle is within this river. II. Sins of Excess. Circle 2. Sins of Love. Minos, Semiramis, Paris, Francisca and Paolo. Cir- cle 3. Luxury. Ciacco. Circle 4. Avariciousness and Prodigality. Circle 5. Anger. The Styx. Cir- cle 6. The City of Dis. The Agnostics and Heretics. Farinata, Cavalcante, Frederick II. III. Sins of Evil Will. The sins of incontinence are violence, which is a form of deceit. Deceit is the particularly human sin. The violent are so either against their neighbour, themselves, or against God. The deceivers are sinners against general confidence (10 kinds) or against particular persons (4 kinds). Circle 7. Ring i. Violence against others. Cen- taurs, Attila, Chiron, Tyrants and Murderers. Ring 2. Suicides, as complaining trees and Gamers. Ring 3. Blasphemers, Extortionists, Unnatural Sinners. The Phlegethon. Sodomites. Circle 8. Deceit. OUTLINES or GREAT DRAMAS 1 79 Ring I. Panders. Ring 2. Flatterers. Ring 3. Simoniacs. Ring 4. Magicians. Ring 5. Bribers and Bribed. Ring 6. Hypocrites. Ring 7. Thieves. Ring 8. Evil Advisers. Ulysses. Ring 9. Makers of Discord. Muhammad. Ring 10. Coiners and Alchemists. Liars. Personators. Circle 9. The Giants. Traitors. Ring i. Blood Traitors. Ring 2. Traitors to country. Ring 3. Friend Traitors. Ring 4. Arch Traitors. Judas, Brutus and Cassius. Return to the Light. As Alighieri goes through each stage of punish- ment or blessedness, it is supposed that he becomes purified in himself in respect to that particular sin which there is punished or worked out. So he is purified sufficiently to behold the light at last in heaven. Purgatory is divided into three sections. Section I. Pro-Purgatory. Those who in life delayed repentance till the last moment. Section IL Purgatory Proper. The seven cir- cles correspond to the seven capital sins. Section IIL The Earthly Paradise, on the peak of a mountain, up the side of which the road has wound through the seven circles successively. The Paradise is a didactic poem which is centred on the conception of God as the Prime Mover, dwell- ing in the highest and most refined heaven, the Em- pyreum, the source and fulness of all intelligible light. Heaven is again conceived as consisting of concentric circles, or realms, each conceived as the circle of a certain planet. Circle i. The moon. Those who sinned against their own free will. Free l8o OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS will and oath. Circle 2. Mercury. Law. Justin- ian. Political system. Sin and redemption. Circle 3. Venus. Divine love. Charles Martel explains why children differ from their parents. Rahab, the harlot. Circle 4. The sun. Saints of knowledge. The saints form figures of light, such as wreaths, ladders, crosses, eagles; according to the symbolism of their particular qualities. Here are two wreaths of saints : Thomas of Aquino in the one, Francis of Assisi in the other. Bonaventura and other theo- logians. Circle 5. Mars. The Martyrs, heroes of faith. Circle 6. Jupiter. Righteous authority. Princes. Circle 7. Saturn. Monks, orders. Section II. The Heaven and Fixed Stars. The Rose and Lilies; Mary, the Apostles and Adam. Christ and Mary show themselves. Dante is puri- fied within. He is blinded, examined and taught by Peter and John, and James; faith, charity and hope. Section III. The Heaven of Crystal. The hier- archy of Angels, the nine degrees of Dionysius the Areopagite. Their fall, goodness and number. Section IV. The Empyreum, the primum mobile. Beatrice forsakes him to take again her proper place in the Holy Rose. Bernard teaches him about Mary. The Trinity; 'L'Amor, che move' 1 ciel, e 1' altre stelle.' The lessons of the Divina Commedia may be said to be ( I ) Unextinguishable thirst after the Divine Light. (2) Inexorable punishment for sin. (3) Progressive sanctification. (4) God's centrality in human life. The reasons why the Divina Commedia OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS l8l is SO beautiful are that, in Christian form, it repre- sents the conception of justice and purification which is diametrically opposed to a mediatorial magical remission of sins, and which by its inherent truth ap- peals to every heart. There is in literature no better example than this of the inconsistency of dogma and poetic truth, which is not noticed because the heart approves of it in one way and the prejudiced mind in another. Whether the imperishable beauty of the expression be due partly to the language, partly to theology, partly to the colouring of the times, it remains that it was Alighieri who, in the hands of Providence, was the means of producing the great poem. 1 82 OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS Calderon's Prodigious Magician. If Goethe's 'Faust' was only the supreme repre- sentation of the legends and traditions of an age, can we expect of Calderon's supreme soul-drama that it shall be invented 'out of whole cloth'? If it were, it would be worthless; for, as excellence is only superior ability to serve others, so is greatness only unusual fidelity to life, accurate representative- ness. Indeed, the chief value and significance of the 'Prodigious Magician' lies in its 'fixing' for future generations a legend handed down for thir- teen centuries from the times of Gregory Nazianzen (a.d. 330-389, in his eulogy on St. Cyprian of Carthage), through Simon Metaphrastes, by Arch- bishop Simon of Voragine (a.d. i 230-1 298), in his 'Golden Legend.' Further, we are grateful, rather than resentful, for Calderon's transmitting, in this play, so much of the best work of Mira de Mescua (1578-1640), ('The Galant Hermit and the Servant-maid of Heaven,' 'the Slave of the Devil,' and 'The Devotion of the Cross'), and Guil- leu de Castro ('The Miracle of the Mountain, and the Martyr of Heaven, St. Barbara'), while elab- orating this millenial legend in final form. Calderon's 'Prodigious Magician' summates a whole age of Christian martyrdom, avoiding its dan- gers of fanaticism by a hallowed discussion of world- OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS 1 83 wide problems of human nature by means of the mediceval element of mystic magic. For this reason, it ranks as one of the representative dramas of the world. Thus, it is not, like 'Faust,' an unsectarian analysis of human life; it is a philosophic polemic for the Christian Church, and admirably suits the immediate object of its writing — a Church festival at Yepes in A.D. 1637, and might with profit be revived on such occasions. However, as Calderon lived in the Spanish world, we could not expect Ger- man philosophy and burgher life; we shall have to be prepared to overlook considerable conventionality and gallantry for the sake of sonorous poetry in scenes which could have been planned only by a genius. The first two acts serve chiefly to introduce the characters: Cyprian, a wealthy philosopher, who has fallen in love with Justina, the Christian beauty, daughter of the poor but virtuous Lysander. The Demon has succeeded in embroiling and finally put- ting away her lovers, Florus and Lelius, into the safety of durance vile. The comedy element is rep- resented by Mosco and Clarin, servants to Cyprian, who, being rivals for the love of Justina's maid, Livia, are to enjoy her favor on alternate days. These two acts are quite commonplace. The very first words of the third act, however, are pitched in the sublime key that is to lead up to the final climax of apotheosis. In an elevated mono- logue, Cyprian, who had safely weathered idolatry and ambition, confesses himself overwhelmed by 184 OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS love, and expresses his willingness to lose his soul in order to win Justina. A sudden magic storm represents a shipwreck, from which the Demon emerges as a shipwrecked magician, who offers to accomplish that object for him if he shall, in blood, subscribe his soul to him, showing his power by making a mountain move, and by showing him a vision of Justina. Cyprian goes into the bargain, and follows the Demon into the wilderness for a year's study of magic. Calderon seems slyly to ridicule the traditional subscription in blood of a bargain with the devil, by making the servant Clarin in vain offer to make the same bargain in order to make sure of Livia. Clarin, however, finds the blood for this operation by a way more convenient than the dagger's thrust inside the elbow, namely, by punching his nose till it bleeds. In a cave in the desert, at the end of this period, Cyprian demands fulfilment of the bargain. The Demon appears in Justina's room, and tempts her, but is repulsed by her trust in God. He then is driven to creating a Phantasm, which Cyprian pur- sues, but which, when forced to unmask, shows only a skeleton. Disillusioned, Cyprian retracts his bar- gain with the Demon, who is forced to confess the supremacy of the God of the Christians, but at- tempts to frighten Cyprian by appearing in full dia- bolic regalia; this, however, after a struggle, fails, by Cyprian's determination to be converted and bap- tized. OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS 1 85 At a gathering of Christians, Roman soldiers have broken in, and captured the whole crowd, including Justina. As news of this is brought to the Governor, the Demon arrives, spreading the cry to 'beware of the madman,' so as to diminish the effect of the conversion of Cyprian, who enters in haste, profess- ing his new religion, and challenging the Governor's punishment thereof; but he falls down in a faint. Justina is brought in, and as test of her constancy she is left alone with the insensible form. Cyprian revives, and, announcing his conversion, the couple find mutual love in death. After their execution an earthquake destroys the house of the Governor, and Cyprian and Justina are seen ascending to heaven, surrounded by angels, who close the play by a 'Hallelujah.' 1 86 OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS Goethe's Faust. The Faust legend is so old, and has been treated by so many writers, and is so familiar, that it were an impertinence to repeat the tale. But its spiritual gist, especially in the classical form given to it by Goethe, of the legend is little appreciated, even though Kuno Fischer and Boyesen have done such splendid work in this field. The introduction, evidently modelled on that of the book of Job, indicates that Goethe both endorses its lesson of the necessity of trial and temptation for moral growth and attainment, and also considers his work likewise in the light of a soteriological drama, which fact Goethe emphasized by calling it a Welt- epos, a World Epic, a dramatic parable of human life. The main lesson of the drama is divine discontent: restlessness of spirit, unquenchable thirst for the truth, goodness, nobility, beauty, desire for God — this is the leit-motiv of the plot, poem, drama. "Should I ever," says Faust, "say to the then present moment, 'Stay, abide with me, thou art so beauti- ful,' " then should his soul be forfeited to Mephis- topheles. And, actually, Faust's death occurs when he has, unconsciously, in letter, though not in spirit, uttered just those words, when at the end of a long course he has by unselfish labours attained that de- OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS 1 87 served blessedness it had never entered into the heart of Mephistopheles to conceive; so much so that the latter, in all good faith, conceives he has won his wager, and summons his spirits securely to conduct the soul of Faust below. This divine discontent is represented again as the angels' Easter-song whose divine harmonies had wooed Faust to refrain from suicide. 'To you who actively praise Him : who show love, and fraternally dispense your riches : who preach and travel, promis- ing blessedness: to you is the Master present, to you alone.' At the grave of Faust the angels sing : 'Who, ever struggling, labours on, him can we redeem, him can we save!' This divine discontent is represented again as the one particular quality of Faust's soul which Mephis- topheles is doing his best to stifle. If only he could, with anything, content Faust! Faust's least whim is gratified and yet he ever strives on to something better. There is ever the ideal which hovers above the actual, and it is this that Mephistopheles would make him forget in the blinding intoxication of the senses. So Faust does investigate the realm of the senses, but has sufficient nobility to be faithful to Gretchen, and through that to suffer with her, and thereby to be saved from further lust. Healed and comforted by nature after the tragedy, he turns to culture, such as it may be found in his own home, at the court of the emperor. But as soon as, while labouring to the utmost within its circle, he has caught a glimpse of true (Greek) culture, in the 1 88 OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS symbolic form of Helena, he abandons home and country in the quest of it, without resting till he has embraced its fulness and power. Undergoing in the 'Second Walpurgisnight' a sort of education in the history, significance, and development of Greek art, he dares, assisted unwillingly only by Mephis- topheles, the descent to Hades. United with true, perfect Greek art, in the person of Helena, he begets a son Euphorion, who represents the winged genius of modern poetry. But mere art for art's sake does not satisfy. There are higher reaches. He must apply this art to practical life at home; and when Helena follows Euphorion below, her 'cloak,' the classic form in art, remains in his hands : her only but most precious legacy. TJestlessly on again goes Faust, divinely driven to a sphere higher than art, to practical morality, to sociological altruism. In order to gain the power of doing good, Faust serves the emperor in a battle; but the regenerate Faust has no stomach for war, as a destructive process, even though the arts of Mephistopheles reduce it to pyrotechnical illusions. Faust proposes to undertake some marvel greater than had yet been attempted: he will do something constructive ; he will drive back the sea; he will open canals; he will institute inter- national commerce ; he will build up new social con- ditions, even if in the process the hut and chapel of the stupidly conservative Philemon and Baucis must disappear. Then indeed is he ready to rejoice In satisfaction, as he feels in his heart the approving voice of the spirit, and he is ready to pass beyond. OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS 1 89 But even here must there be divine discontent. The 'Pater Ecstaticus' is only a soul-stage leading up to the 'Pater Profundus,' who points up to the 'Pater Seraphicus', and beyond him to the 'Doctor Mari- anus.' Immediately above the latter stands Gretchen, who must go higher lest Faust meet her here and thus be satisfied with this height, instead of seeking and attaining the Presence of God Himself: divine discontent even in heaven ! There are so many other spiritual lessons that it is impossible to do more than mention even some of them. Learning and reflection lead a soul to the contemplation of truth, whatever this may finally turn out to be. So Faust, through study, gains suffi- cient divine approval to render him worthy of the Devil's arts. Again, no soul, however much mis- taken, is in danger of being lost, except through wil- fulness, inasmuch as every soul, 'in its blind intui- tions, is self-conscious of the right road.' Again, the first, greatest, and most subtle temptation is that of lust. Gretchen is saved by voluntarily suffering the due punishment; the sooner a debt to the Gods is paid, the better. Again, magic, compared to labour, is but worthless. Mephistopheles acutely says: 'How luck and merit are related, never enters the minds of those fools. Yea, had they even the phi- losopher's stone, it were useless to them for lack of the philosopher to use it.' Again, the secret of at- tainment is revealed in the phrase which distresses Faust in his earlier days, Thou must abstain. To be willing to forego even that which is permissible is 190 OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS a heroism which insures purity, self-control, and im- mortality. In short, the motto of this sublime master-piece might well be Augustine's glorious sentiment, "Thou madest us for Thyself, and our heart is troubled until it rest in Thee." OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS I9I Edgar Quinet's Ah&sverus, If we seek a correct view of French nature, let us listen for a moment to Chateaubriand: "Eldest sons of antiquity, the French, Roman by genius, are Greek by character. Unquiet and flighty in good fortune; constant and invincible in adversity; formed for arts, civilized to excess, during the calm of the state; vulgar and savage in political troubles, floating around like vessels without ballast, at the mercy of passions; now in the skies, the next mo- ment in abysses; enthusiastic both for evil and for good, doing good without requiring gratitude, and evil without remorse ; remembering neither their own crimes nor virtues; lovers of life, to the point of cowardice during peace, prodigal of their existence in battles, vain, scoffers, ambitious; both imitators and inventors, scorning everything that is not them- selves; individually the most amiable human beings, in a body the most disagreeable of all; charming in their own country, insupportable abroad; In turn more gentle, more innocent than lambs, and then more pitiless, more ferocious than tigers ; such were the Athenians In antiquity, such are the French of to-day." After so brilliant a characterization we are in high expectancy as to what it might bring forth in the shape of a world drama ; we shall expect brilliant igi' OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS invention without too profound a moral. Let me detail the story of Edgar Quinet's 'Ahasverus.' Quinet laid hold of that romantic tradition of the Wandering Jew which had echoed down the Middle Ages, and read in it the immortal problem of man's purpose and destiny. Though technically written in prose, the drama is aureoled by sublimest poetry, of which, of course, our short summary must in- evitably deprive it. INTRODUCTION The action begins in heaven, on the day before the one when God is to create a new heaven and earth which shall be better than the present ones; and for the instruction of angels and saints who are to take part in the new work, the Divinity unrolls a complete account of the old. This is needed be- cause every angel and soul had passed through this earth without getting a complete view of all coun- tries and ages, hence none had guessed where lay the Old World's real faults, which were to be cor- rected in the New. FIRST DAY The First Day is Creation, dragging Its sinuous progress through the various prehistoric ages, voiced successively by its chief products until the ancient civilizations send to Bethlehem three Magi to wor- ship the Christ. On their return home these Magi find their own home cities In ruins, because of the advent of Christ. Then follows, as Interlude, a satiric rejoicing of the devils on the failure of God's work. OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS 1 93 SECOND DAY The Second Day is the Passion of Jesus, the story of Ahasverus and his curse; closed by a chorus of old men of the classic civilizations. THIRD DAY The Third Day transpires in Mediaeval times, in a town on the Rhine. There resides Death, who masquerades by day as an old woman, known by the suggestive name of "Mob." By night, however. Death appears in her real character, in a sort of Witches' Sabbath. With her dwells Rachel, in external appearance a girl, but in reality an angel, who has been ejected from heaven for having shed a tear at the doom of Ahasverus. Hither, indeed, comes Ahasverus, and In a sort of Faust-and-Gretchen episode. Ahas- verus, after having wronged her, is married to her in Cologne Cathedral at midnight, amidst a Sabbat of the Dead, which ends with a universal curse of Ahasverus, with the exception of his faithful Rachel, who blesses him. The following Interlude consists of a sublime cho- rus representing the awakening of modern poetry. FOURTH DAY The Fourth Day consists of the Last Judgment. Both Ahasverus and Rachel become outcasts, wan- der restlessly throughout the world, everywhere seek- ing Christ In vain. All the various civilizations are judged. Ahasverus remains to the last, and even then, saved by Rachel's love, seeks progressive life Instead of a proffered forgiveness and rest, and 194 OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS therefore is rewarded by a progressive ascent through the planets. But in that act of the rejec- tion of their forgiveness, Christ and God perish under the ascendancy of Eternity, which remains self-contained and self-sufficient until the re-creation of a fresher universe. Quinet's message, therefore, is a better condition of affairs for our successors, but, alas! not for us; yet one for whose amelioration we may find it worth while to die, and sacrifice our own success exter- nally. Christ has, therefore, not died in vain, and not in vain do we hand over the torch of life to our successors. OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS 1 95 Longfellow's Golden Legend. The Golden Legend Is at least as old as the twelfth century, when Hartmann von der Aue, the Minne- singer, wrote the poem der Arme Heinrich. Bent says of it: 'The hero, a man of wealth and noble birth, is suddenly stricken with leprosy, which, he is told, can be cured only by the sacrifice of the life of a maiden who may be willing to die for him. This maiden Is found in the family of one of Poor Henry's tenants, who receives him after the world has cast him out. Her offer to die for her lord is accepted, and they travel together to Salerno, where the sacri- fice Is to be consummated. But at the last moment Henry refuses life at this price. Is miraculously cured, and returns home with the peasant girl, whom he makes his wife.' The story Is, however, at least as old as Sadi, who. In his Gulistan, recounts one very similar to It. But here It Is not a maiden, but a boy. We may, for convenience's sake, take Longfellow's setting of it as its classical form. The latter has executed his task with great art and skill. The local touches are excellent. The miracle- play, the disorder in the monastery, the friendship of Henry for Walther von der Vogelwelde, and many other mediaeval incidents, are very happily conceived and executed. But we are here concerned only with 196 OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS the more pareenetlc aspects of it. The personality of Lucifer is very cleverly drawn, and adds to the soteriological interest. He appears to Henry in the midst of a storm, as a travelling physician, who, while dexterously encouraging Henry to think seri- ously of the proposed cure by the sacrifice of a maiden, he prevails on him to drink liquor, on the plea of prolonging or rather resuscitating his life. An angel appears, bewailing the drinking of it by Henry, who for a short period imagines himself wholly recovered and uplifted. But he sinks into sleep, the angel departing in sorrow. On her father Gottlieb's farm in the Odenwald Elsie learns to know Henry, and freely offers her life for his. The parish priest being in haste, will not wait to hear Henry's confession; but Lucifer hears it, encouraging him to accept Elsie's proffered sacri- fice, in spite of Henry's own better feelings. Lucifer appears as an ironical, worldly-wise character, who has much to say about the church and its methods that is very apt; but on occasion he can manifest his bitter and malevolent nature — appearing throughout as the traditional monkish Devil. When they reach Salerno, it is Lucifer again who receives them, now clad in doctor's robes, and is about to despatch Elsie, when Henry breaks through the door and saves her. Lucifer appears no more, and they return home with pomp, where the marriage to Lady Alicia, as she is now called, is celebrated with full ceremonial. The central thought seems to be that while it is perfectly permissible for one person to be willing to OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS 1 97 sacrifice himself for the sake of another, the latter has no right to accept the sacrifice. In other words, no man should permit harm to happen to another man, whatever the effect be to himself. Longfellow's clever setting illustrates capitally a few minor principles. Never trust the advice even of the priest in confession preferably to the voices that speak from within the soul itself. At every step in human life Lucifer and the Angel are ready to advise and guide. The soul need never complain of not having been warned. Salvation can never come through another person; if it comes at all, it will come from God direct. 198 OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS Tennysen's Holy Gr&il. The legends of the Holy Grail are many and vari- ous. Obscure in origin, the earliest connected leg- ends come from Breton sources. Sir Thomas Malory embodied them in his Morte Darthur, and since his day many poets have set forth one or the other por- tions of the legend. But the form in which it has attained greatest popularity is Tennyson's Holy Grail, which will here be considered the classical form of the legend. Percivale is relating to his fellow-monk Ambrosias those events of his life which centred in the Holy Grail, and led him to embrace the religious life. Per- civale's sister, when Arthur's court was established, heard of the Holy Grail. She asked her confessor, 'O Father, might it come to me by prayer and fast- ing?' 'Nay, I know not, for thy heart is pure as snow.' And so she prayed and fasted till through her the sun shone, and the wind blew. And one day she called for Percivale, her eyes being calm and holy. She told him she had seen It, and charged him to tell of It to the knights of the Table Round, that they, too, might fast and pray till they saw It, and the world be healed; and both he and many others so did. Then she called for Galahad, a maiden boy- knight, all arrayed in white. She bound a sword around him, pledging him to the Quest, 'till one will OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS 1 99 crown thee king, far in the spiritual city.' And one day, when Galahad sat in the Siege Peril- ous in Arthur's Hall, the storm came. And the Holy White Beam shone in it. And many of the knights swore they would follow It till they found It and saw It, for they had beheld It veiled only. But Galahad beheld It clearly, hearing a Voice, 'Galahad, follow me.' And as Percivale rode, every evil within him rose up again and said to him, This Quest is not for thee. All he met turned to ashes — lawns and rivers, a woman spinning, an armed Splendour, a City wide and glorious, an old man — all crumbles. 'Lo, if I find the Holy Grail Itself, and touch It, It will crum- ble into dust!' Making confession to a hermit, he was told he lacked humility. Then came Galahad, and at the sacring of the mass Galahad alone saw It; and, Percivale following across dark mountains to the edge of the sea, he went on alone across bridges that after him passed away into fire. And so he reached the ship, and over the ship hung the Grail, now visible, and, as the ship sailed, on the horizon appeared the Spiritual City, whither the Grail departed to ultimately, and shall be no more seen. Then Percivale came to the court of a girl play-fellow, who loved him, and gave herself and her kingdom to him, and the Quest faded in his heart. But one night his vow burned within him, and he fled, and joined himself to Galahad, and cared no more for aught. Bors once saw Lancelot, in a fury, pass by in haste 200 OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS — he had slept, said he, and he must make up for lost time. But Bors went on till he came to the land of the Paynim, and there, cast into prison, saw the seven stars of Arthur's Table Round, and between them the Holy Grail, that passed in a clap of thun- der. Then was he freed. Then Arthur asked Gawain, Was this Quest for thee ? Nay ; he had communed with a holy man, who had made him sure this Quest was not for him ; the rest of the time he spent with merry maidens in the pavilioned field. Had Lancelot seen It? Nay! With tears in his eyes, Lancelot told how he had first learnt from a hermit that there was one secret sin which twined around his heart so that unless he overcame it he should never see the Grail. And as he went on, sor- rowing, he was driven into far lands, where he was stricken down by 'mean knights.' Then came over him his madness, driving him far afield, till he came to a boat by the shore, which, as he entered, drave on through the storm to the enchanted Castle of Carbonek. He passed through the gate guarded by two chained lions, and went up a thousand steps till he reached a door whence streamed crimson light. And as he looked he saw three men sacring mass — and he knew the Grail was there; so he essayed to break open the door, but he was stricken down by hand unseen when he saw that the Grail was covered, and 'this Quest was not for me.' Then Gawain mocked loud and long, but Arthur said, OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS 20I Deafer, Gawain, and blinder unto holy things Hope not to make thyself by idle vows Being too blind to have desire to see; But if indeed there came a sign from heaven, Blessed are Bors, Lancelot and Percivale, For these have seen according to their sight. The lessons involved are so plain that he who runs may read. 1 A belief in a special, actual Divine Presence among men which 2 Can only be perceived by those who have made themselves worthy of it 3 Not by any external deeds (forsaking Arthur's court) 4 But by resigning all things in perfect humility (Lancelot's fame and Perclvale's kingdom and wife) 5 Through prayer and fasting which lead to 6 Physical chastity (Galahad the clean maiden) 7 Which leads to trials and kingship in an entirely new place In the immediate visible presence of the Divine (Percivale, Bors and Galahad In Sarras, the far spiritual city) . Blessed are the pure in heart, for they shall see God. No metaphor ! 202 OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS Thomas Hardy's Dynasts. If, now, we turn northwards to England, that in- hospitable land of fogs and frequent snow in June, that small island incapable of producing its own food, we again find a race that has lived on its wits. Its greatness has been marine, supplying trans- portation which other nations did not have the in- centive to develop. Successively conquered by more favored races, the local spirit of inhospitable insu- larity gradually cooled the Roman energy, the Saxon aggressiveness, the Norman fire. With such scanti- ness of means of life, practicality is the first British consideration; compromise is the prime virtue, fight- ing for ideals the utmost folly, the successful mer- chant is the noblest hero. Too practical are they, even, to abolish royalty, for it is too convenient to hide the sordidness of their political bargaining; so that under this eminently respectable mantle the opportunist Cabinet may swing as a pendulum in response to all private interests. So little patriotism is there, that the national flag was not tolerated on schoolhouses, till recently, at least. The only times, within memory of man, when England had the sense to act on any definite line of policy was when its very existence was threatened OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS 203 by an enemy; and the reason why it was in the past conquered by Roman, Saxon and Norman was the typical British inability to act as a unit. The only recent times Britain did get together were at the Boer war, the Spanish Armada, Louis XIV, or at the time of Napoleon's threatened invasion. Significantly enough, it is just this latter emer- gency that Thomas Hardy chooses as the theme of his speculation on human life, entitled 'The Dy- nasts.' Practical before all else, sterile in imagina- tion. Hardy does not invent a scene; he simply represents a historical action, interspersing here and there his reflections, in the mouth of the Spirit of the Years, the Earth Spirit, and other abstractions. But through this faithfulness to nature Hardy gains a certain sanity of conception, interest of personali- ties, and grandeur of genuine complexity. The re- sult is a ponderous three-volume work, too unwieldy for representation, fitted only for the leisured dilet- tante, for the matter-of-fact general reader who likes stories as such, and who is either ignorant or patriotic enough to take Interest in historical com- monplaces familiar to school children; though it is only fair to state that the wealth of historical detail would interest antiquarians, and does, indeed, clothe the historic characters with reality and sympathy, even at a casual glance. But for all of that, Hardy's work is sublime. For it is not merely history, it is history so classified and unified that we gain perspective ; we begin to suspect and grasp heroic significance; we feel, running 204 OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS through it all, an Immanent Will, in itself uncon- scious, insentient, "a great foresightedness, a vast fermenting vat, an automatic sense, unweeting where or whence, a knitter drowsed, whose fingers play in skilled unconsciousness. Of this unconscious will the human figures of the historic drama are the pup- pets, endowed with a false sense of their own im- portance and independence." And while the whole historic episode unwinds itself unconsciously, at least in the epilogue is expressed a hope that this great unconscious Immanent Will may gradually arouse Itself by just such dramatic episodes to pro- gressive self-consciousness, sometime, somehow, somewhere; but, as to us, we are yet self-deceived puppets of a blind Calvinistic deterministic uncon- scious Will. OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS 205 Moody's Masque ef Judgment. Like Spain once did, let us turn westward over the lost Atlantis to the youngest nation, America, and listen for its oracle also, seeing it has had the sub- lime temerity to attack the problems of democratic government, which not only is one Sphinx, but a host of them. What, then, is America's answer? William Vaughan Moody supplies it in its 'Masque of Judgment.' The stage setting he uses Valley of Jehoshaphat, Satan, the Serpent, human voices, and the Archangels. In vibrant diction is familiar — the Incarnation, the Judgment in the that thrills he galvanizes these ancient stage prop- erties into a new and living interest. There lies Moody's genius. With the simplest materials he has created an interest which chains us to the uncertain event, and sways us to tears. His message is fresh: with sublime audacity, dwarfed only by the virile sincerity which gives him the pro- phetic license to use, adapt and alter the time-honored stories, he, as worthy champion of American prog- ress, enforces this message: that passions, as such, are not only divine, but are the efficient energy of Progress; by eternal divine discontent the meanest man might have attained to divine powers. They are divine in themselves, yet are divine in function only when guided, as partners, by the soul and spirit 2o6 OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS — ^just as Plato said in his well-known allegory of the Driver of the Chariot. But if the soul should ever, in mistaken zeal, by senseless austerity or fa- natic asceticism, dare to dissolve this partnership, then this very attitude of soul constitutes an oppo- sition to and by the Passions. Henceforth the Pas- sions are opponents of the good; their divine instinct of progress asserts itself; but, having lost guidance and direction, instead of progress helping the soul, they rear their swinging dragon head against the very battlements of heaven, break down its portals, and hurtle their way even into the very heart of God. A fearful doom, yet a logical one. It teaches us with heart-rending urgency the only condition of sane progress, and the evolution of san- ity: namely, the inevitable union between Conscience and Sense, between faith and reason, between theory and practice. Though with sublime confidence. Mon- ism trumpets that they really are one and the same, even if they be opposite faces of the same statue of existence, yet in practical life we feel only their con- tradiction; and Moody's orphic oracle is that we must ever hold them together; that scornful aban- donment of sense by the vertiginous spirit turns sense into an opponent whose dormant divinity can even conquer Heaven, and thereby ultimately ruin itself. In pity for itself, in pity for the divine attributes of sense and passions, man's spiritual soul must con- tinue friendly relations with its monstrous and ter- rible babe ; the partnership must be utilized for divine purposes ; and then may we yet hope to actualize the OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS 207 long desire of centuries, and establish divine order in a Republic of God, a new Jerusalem, that hath foundations whose maker and builder is God. 208 OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS Kebes' Greek Pilgrim's Progress. The author of the Picture was probably the Kebes who was a disciple of Sokrates, and one of the few witnesses of the latter's last words and moments, and who wrote three dialogues, of which this is the only remaining one, the Phrynichos and the Hehdome be- ing lost. It is also probable that in the Picture there are several later interpolations, though these need not seriously impugn the genuineness of the work: for the spirit is Sokratic, and the diction Boeotian. But it matters not who was its author. It stands or falls on its merits. Whether technically Stoic or not, it teaches most powerfully and attractively that no sense gratification, nor wealth, power, honour, nor any external thing can possibly yield true happiness or contentment. This can only come from true cul- ture, that is not necessarily the valuable scientific training, but rather virtue and righteousness — the only happiness worth having. The Picture is an allegory much on the same order as Bunyan's Pilgrim's Progress. Two friends, vis- iting a temple of Saturn, discover a large allegorical painting, which they beg a hoary priest to interpret to them. It represents a large city, surrounded by a wall. It is the city of Life. Before the gate stand crowds pressing to enter, while an old man, the Guardian Spirit, warns them what to do, and whither OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS 209 to go, after they shall have entered. On a throne within the Gate sits the woman Enticement, who in- duces all to partake of the poison Ignorance and Error from the cup she offers them. All partake : but some drink more, some less. Blinded by this potion, they are unable to find the True Road before Courtesans, standing near by, seize upon them and promise to lead them to Good Fortune and Advan- tage; their names are Opinion, Desire, and Lust. Among them wanders a blind, deaf, and insane fe- male, rolling around on a round stone, named the Goddess of Luck, who takes from the ones and gives to the others by chance; those who trust her fall into misfortune. These are the Thoughtless ; but she has power over external goods only. Immediately within the external walls is a higher wall. Whoever has received goods from the God- dess of Luck is entered at its gate, is greeted by Cour- tesans named Immoderateness, Flattery, Luxury, and Insatiableness. Those who enter, while still intoxi- cated, are robbed, and when sobered, enslaved by the Courtesans, who force them to commit sins in punishment of which they are finally handed over to Pain, who punishes both by scourge and prison. Near her stand Mourning, Sorrow, Agony, and Despair, amidst whom the souls must end their lives unless, by chance, they be met by Repentance. The latter gives these unfortunates New Opinions and New Desires, and leads them to True Culture; on the way, how- ever, they pass False Culture. Whoever stays with her is once more misled by False Opinion ; and many 2IO OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS are they, mistaking her for True Culture. Among them are poets, rhetoricians, dialecticians, musicians, mathematicians, astronomers, hedonists, peripatetics, critics, and their like. They are the same who once dwelt with Immoderateness, who drank of Entice- ment, and in them yet works Ignorance, Prejudice, Foolishness, and Error. But where is True Culture? On a desert moun- tain, outside of the City of Evil, the Gate above being reached by a narrow Path, steep, with abysses on each side. Two women, Self-control and Endurance, reach down to help the pilgrims up. On the summit is a Grove, within which stands a Temple, the abode of the Blessed, of Virtues, and Happiness. On a square stone stands Culture, and near her her daugh- ters. Truth and Conviction. There the pilgrim is purified and admitted to true Knowledge and all the Virtues, who lead him to their own mother. Blessed- ness, and crown him Victor In the most difficult Bat- tle, who sets his hope and blessedness not on others, but on himself. When crowned he Is led to see how others who are In the darkness suffer, and the reason of their sufferings Is explained. But Culture receives not all. These must return downwards without a crown, led by Sadness, Discouragement, Shame and Unconsciousness. And when they have returned among the sinful, they tell evil tales of Culture. But the Good Opinions, as soon as they have saved one pilgrim, return downwards, laughing and rejoicing, to save others. For the Guardian Spirit had warned the pilgrims especially against the Goddess of Luck, OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS 211 that they might take refuge in the abiding goods of Culture. Yet he advises them to take from False Culture the knowledge of languages and sciences which are indeed not necessary, but highly useful as safeguards against fanaticism. Being still caught in the meshes of error, students, as such, have no ad- vantage over other men, while the little learning they do have misleads them into a false security in which they cease to look into new and unpopular things, which ignorant people might do. And as far as exter- nal goods go, they are only good as long as they are used well; in evil hands they are but curses. Which were best: to live in shame or to die gloriously? Surely the latter; hence a man will prefer to live in poverty rather than in the riches that are under the control of the Luck-Goddess. External things are, in the last analysis, neither good nor evil; only Wis- dom is a good, only Folly is an evil. Such is the Picture of Kebes : of which no one word need be altered to make it apply to all ages and nations. A noble work, whoever be its author. Plain, so that he who runs may read : inexorable search for Culture. Whether or not written by a disciple of Sokrates, it represents the Sokratic stand-point of individuality as against social success. Salvation is individual, not for the sake of the State. This is the very element of individuality which, together with the rationalism of Plato, forms the spiritual gist of .Sschulos' Prometheus: the evolution of the Mind of Man. 212 OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS Augustine's City qf God, Jowett's account may be of general value as an introduction to this great work: 'Plato's Republic has been said to be a Church and not a State : and such an ideal of a city in the heavens has always hovered over the Christian world, and is embodied in Augustine's De Civitate Dei, which is suggested by the decay and fall of the Roman Empire, much in the same manner in which we imagine the Republic of Plato to have been influenced by the decline of Greek politics in the writer's own age. The differ- ence is that in the time of Plato the degeneracy, though certain, was gradual and insensible : whereas the taking of Rome by the Goths stirred like an earth- quake the age of Augustine. Men were inclined to believe that the overthrow of the city was to be ascribed to the anger felt by the old Roman deities at the neglect of their worship. Augustine maintains the opposite thesis: he argues that the destruction of the Roman Empire Is due, not to the rise of Chris- tianity, but to the vices of Paganism. He wanders over Roman history, and over Greek philosophy and mythology, and finds everywhere crime, Impiety and falsehood. He compares the worst part of the Gen- tile religion with the best elements of the faith of Christ. He shows nothing of the spirit which led OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS 213 Others of the early Christian Fathers to recognize in the writings of the Greek philosophers the power of the divine truth. He traces the parallel of the kingdom of God, that is, the history of the Jews, contained in their Scriptures, and of the kingdom of the world, which was found in gentile writers, and pursues them both into an ideal future. It need hardly be remarked that his use both of the Greek and Roman historians and of the sacred writings of the Jews is wholly uncritical. The heathen mythol- ogy, the Sybilline oracles, the myths of Plato, the dreams of Neo-Platonists are equally regarded by him as matters of fact. He must be acknowledged to be a strictly polemical or controversial writer who makes the best on one side and the worst of every- thing on the other. He has no sympathy with old Roman life, as Plato has with Greek life, nor has he any idea of the ecclesiastical kingdom which was to rise out of the ruins of the Roman Empire. He is not blind to the defects of the Christian Church, and looks forward to a time when Christian and Pagan shall be alike brought before the judgment-seat, and the true City of God shall appear. — The work of Augustine is a curious repertory of antiquarian learn- ing and quotations, deeply penetrated with Christian ethics but showing little power of reasoning, and a slender knowledge of Greek literature and language. He was a great genius, and a noble character, yet hardly capable of feeling or understanding anything external to his own theology. Of all the ancient phi- losophers he is most attracted by Plato, though he is 214 OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS very slightly acquainted with his writings. He is inclined to believe that the idea of creation in the Timsus is from the narrative in Genesis : and he is strangely taken with the coincidence ( ?) of Plato's saying that the philosopher is the lover of God, and the words of the book of Exodus in which God re- veals himself to Moses (iii: 14). He dwells at length on miracles performed in his own day, of which the evidence is regarded by hira as irresistible. He speaks in a very interesting manner of the beauty and utility of nature and of the human frame, which he conceives to afford a foretaste of the heavenly state and of the resurrection of the body. The book is not really what to most persons the title of it would imply, and belongs to an age which has passed away. But it contains many fine passages and thoughts which are for all time.' Jowett's stand-point may be justified, considering the book as an ideal social revelation. Yet it would seem that its true stand-point was slightly different. In the first place it shares with Christian mlllenarian- ism the nature of poetry, rather than economics. It is a strictly religious vision, and ignores any other view of the world. What, therefore, will appear to others ignorance and presumption, will to the Chris- tian represent a glorious ideal. For the Christian it will never be antiquated; it is a prophecy, a poem. The first ten Books are destructive, being aimed against Paganism, They may be omitted for the present purpose. The latter twelve Books, on the contrary, are constructive, and represent the great OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS 21 5 mediaeval poem of the New Jerusalem. The Elev- enth Book, dealing with the Holy and Unholy An- gels, and with the rational interpretation of the Scrip- tures in regard to the Creation, explains at its very opening that this 'City of God' is nothing more than an 'invisible Church' here, and the communion of saints beyond ; 'the City of God, whose citizenship we desire with that love with which its Founder inspired us.' The philosophical significance of Augustine's philosophy is, however, very important, since Chris- tian theology was in his hands moulded once for all. The theology of the East, even of Athanasius, was the Jewish Bible interpreted by Platonism. The the- ology of Augustine, Thomas Aquinas, Calvin, and all other Western Churches was the Latin version of the Jewish Bible interpreted by Aristotelianism in psychology, cosmology and metaphysics. So this free philosophical poem sets forth the three new In- terpretations of the Bible, a Hebrew Aristotelianism transfigured with Christian ethics. The Logos, hav- ing become cast-iron doctrines since Nicaa, Augustine needs Platonism no more, although because he re- ceived his philosophical life from so-called 'Neo- Platonism' he did not know that he derived his sys- tem from Aristotle, not Plato. There is then an invisible 'City of God' composed of angels, corre- sponding to the visible 'City of Evil,' which is the world; and Augustine sets them forth in the Twelfth Book with so much conviction that he does not hesi- tate to say that even if reason cannot refute it, faith should make a laughing-stock of his opponent's 2l6 OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS views.' But his heart is right. 'The more a man loves God, the easier can he be led to blessedness.' This leads to Eschatology, considered in the Thir- teenth Book: of Free Will, Death, and Resurrection. But the significance of this cannot be grasped till the Fall, with its cause of Pride, is made plain. Book xiv. In this originates the Visible portion of the Invisible Church of God: the Patriarchs prior to the Flood, Book XV, from the Flood to the Prophets, Bk xvi, expressed in the rejoicing of the Psalms, Bk xvii. That the Spirit of God dwelt within the visible City of God is proved by the miracles, which took place ever since the creation down to Augustine's own days, Bk xviii. This blessedness of the City of God is the outcome of the morality of Christianity, which leads to a discussion of 'goodness,' Bk xix. The con- ception of Goodness or Merit naturally leads to that of Judgment, Bk xx, and the First Resurrection, inti- mately connected with Baptism, which prefigures the final Punishments, Bk xxi, and Rewards, Bk xxii. 'There will we live and see, see and love, love and praise. Behold, this will be our destiny for eternity. For what other destiny should there be for human life, except to attain the kingdom, that hath no end ? — Thou hast created us for Thyself; and our heart is unquiet until it lie upon Thy Breast — Amen and Amen !' OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS 217 Bunyan's Pilgrim's Progress. The account of the Pilgrim's Progress is writ so large that he who runs may read. It tells of how a Pilgrim followed a road guarded on either hand by two stone walls, that led from the City of Destruction to Mount Sion; and how the wife and children he had left behind followed after him, under the pro- tection of Great-Heart. It is a strong book, for all its child-like simplicity. Christian, with a burden on his back, is touched in his conscience, but finds no sympathy at home. Evangelist gives him a roll that is to comfort him, and shows him the Wicket-Gate. Obstinate and Pliable follow him, fleeing from the wrath to come. The former returns quickly, the latter a little later, when the Slough of Despond is reached. Help as- sists Christian to get out, who directly meets Mr. Worldly Wiseman, who advises him to go to Legal- ity, dwelling near Mount Sinai ; but Evangelist meets him again, and sets him on the right road. Good- Will lets him through the wicket gate into the House of the Interpreter, from which begins the road of Salvation. In the House he sees the Parable of the Picture, the Two Boys Passion and Patience, the Valiant Man, and Despair in his Cage — lessons Christian needs in walking the Narrow Path, walking 2l8 OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS in which Christian comes to a cross before which, y/hile praying, his burden falls. He finds Simple, Sloth, and Presumption asleep, who will not be waked; and Hypocrisy and Formalist come into the road over the wall to save time. But when the three come to the Hill Difficulty, the two new-comers take each one of the two easy roads. Danger and Destruc- tion, while Christian goes up the steep if safe path. Here is an arbour for refreshment, in which he falls asleep, and loses his roll which, after he has reached the top of the hill, by the way passing Distrust and Timorous, he must go back to fetch. These two have been frightened back by the two lions who stand watch at the gate of the Palace Beautiful. Christian passes them safely, because it turns out that they are chained. The Porter calls the virgins Pru- dence, Piety, and Charity. Christian is taken into the armory and fitted out and before starting on his way is shown the Delectable Mountains. Discretion, Prudence, Piety, and Charity accompany him to the Valley of Humiliation, where he meets and over- comes Appollyon. The first half of the Valley of the Shadow of Death he passes by night. On the one side is a ditch, on the other a quag. Further on is the mouth of Hell, whence Satan seeks to torment him by suggesting evil thoughts. The next half he passes by day; it is full of snares, and contains the caves of two giants, Pagan and Pope, the former dead, and the latter helpless. When through the Valley, he overtakes Faithful, who had escaped the Slough, but had been attacked by Wanton, and Adam OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS 219 the First. They met Talkative, a Iamb-like orator in company, but a tartar at home. After a long con- versation he leaves them in disgust. Evangelist now overtakes them and comforts them. Next they reach the city of Vanity Fair, where is the Britain Row, the French Row, the Italian Row, the Spanish Row, the German Row, where several sorts of vanities are to be sold. The pilgrims' presence, garb, and re- fusal to buy, raises a commotion. They are impris- oned, and Faithful finally executed, and taken to Heaven on a chariot. As Christian goes on Hopeful overtakes him. They go together, and are over- taken by By-Ends, from Fair-speech-city, who at last is forced to confess his name, and depart; he al- ways waits for wind and tide, while they go on through all weathers. Hold-the-World, Save-All, and Money-Love catch up with By-Ends, and they try to argue with Christian, who leaves them again. He and Hopeful reach the Valley of Ease, which is but short. Next is Lucre Hill, kept by Demas, who is ignored by the two faithful ones, but is the ruin of the others. The two come to By-path Meadow, where they turn aside for a short rest; but hearing Vain-glorious fall in a pit, they seek to return to the road. But a storm forces them to pass the night under shelter, where they are captured by Giant Despair, who beats them and advises them to do away with themselves. But Christian's key Promise opens all the bars, and they return to the road, erecting a pillar to keep others from the same fate. They arrive at the Delectable Mountains and 220 OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS converse with the Shepherds, named Knowledge, Ex- perience, Watchful, Sincere. They show to the pil- grims Mt. Error, Mt. Caution, the By-way to Hell, and through a perspective glass the Holy City from Mt. Clear. Yet the two pilgrims could not see more than its Gate, because their hands, when holding the glass, shook so with fear at the fate they had so narrowly escaped in the dungeon of Giant Despair. Proceeding, they are joined by Ignorance from Con- ceit-land, who insists that there was no need of entering the Path through the Wicket-Gate. They behold Little-Faith bound by seven cords, and car- ried off by seven devils. They come to a parting of the ways, where the black man Flatterer leads them into a net. A Shining One frees them, leads them back and chastises them. They meet Atheist, but Hopeful keeps Christian from listening to him, while Christian keeps Hopeful from falling asleep on the Enchanted Ground. In the land of Beulah the pil- grims are refreshed, and sit down in sight of the Blessed City. Between them and it flows the River of Death, which is deep or shallow according to the faith of those who pass over. After much distress, the two go safely over and are greeted by thousands of Shining Ones, who lead them with rejoicing up the steep Hill and into the Gate of the City of God. These pilgrims are come from the City of Destruc- tion for the love that they bear to the King of this place. Ignorance is ferried over by Vain-Hope; but having no roll as passport, is bound and put inside of a door in the hill-side, which is the By-way to OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS 221 Hell. The most touching part of the story follows. Christian's wife and children, and neighbour Mercy, follow in his steps, guided and defended by the cham- pion Great-Heart. The whole allegory is founded on a conception of salvation as moral difficulties to be used as steps in character-building — something entirely at variance with the substitutional vicariousness Bunyan himself teaches. But in this Bunyan only did as Augustine and Dante did ; their heart, imagination and practice were soundly moral while what head they had was orthodoxly vicarious. Likewise, nothing is heard of a Son of the King in Sion; but of course the pilgrims are orthodox ! There is, therefore, no need of refu- tations. In spite of his head, Bunyan has told the truth sublimely. 222 OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS Spenser's Faery Queen. Taine gives a few hints of the Faery Queen as it appeared to him: 'The reader will feel that it is impossible to give the plot of such a poem. In fact, there are six poems, each of a dozen cantos, in which the action is ever converging and diverging, becom- ing confused and starting again: and all the imagin- ings of antiquity and the middle age are combined in it. The knight pricks along the plain among the trees, and at a crossing of the paths meets other knights, with whom he engages in combat ; suddenly from within a cave appears a monster, half woman and half serpent, surrounded by a hideous offspring; further on, a giant with three bodies; then a dragon, great as a hill, with sharp talons and vast wings. For three days he fights him, and, twice overthrown, comes to himself only by aid of a gracious ointment. After that there are savage tribes to be conquered, castles surrounded by flames to be taken. Mean- while, ladies are wandering in the midst of for- ests, on white palfreys, exposed to the assaults of miscreants, now guarded by a lion that follows them, now delivered by a band of satyrs who adore them. Magicians work manifold charms; palaces display their festivities; tilt-yards provide interminable tour- naments; sea-gods, nymphs, fairies, kings, intermin- OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS 223 gle in these feasts, surprises, dangers.' Taine mentions five characteristics, among oth- ers — • 1. Naturalness. 'You will say it is a phantasma- goria? What matter, if we see it? And we do see it, for Spenser does. His sincerity communicates itself to us. He is so much at home in this world that we end by finding ourselves at home in it, too.' 2. Love of Beauty. 'A beautiful pagan dream carries on a beautiful dream of chivalry; the link consists in the fact that they are both beautiful. This is the greatness of his work; he has succeeded in seiz- ing beauty in its fulness', caring for it only. 3. Love of Nature. 'This is the kind of thing we meet with in the enchanted forest. Are you ill at ease there, and do you wish to leave it because it is wondrous? At every bend of the alley, at every change of light, a stanza, a word, reveals a landscape or an apparition. It is morning, the white dawn gleams faintly through the trees ; bluish vapours veil the horizon, and vanish in the smiling air ; the springs tremble and murmur faintly among the mosses, and on high the poplar leaves begin to stir and flutter like the wings of butterflies.' 4. Invention. 'However much mythology and chivalry can supply, they do not suffice for the needs of this poetic fancy. Spenser's characteristic is the vastness and overflow of his picturesque imagination. Like Rubens, whatever he creates is beyond the re- gion of all traditions, but complete in all parts, ex- pressing distinct ideas.' 224 OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS 5. Art. 'The poet here, and throughout, is a col- orist and an architect. However fantastic his world may be, it is not factitious; if it does not exist, it might have been — indeed, it should have been; it is the fault of circumstances if they do not so group themselves so as to bring it to pass ; taken by itself, it possesses that internal harmony by which a real thing, even a still higher harmony, exists, inasmuch as, without any regard to real things, it is altogether, and in its least details, constructed with a view to beauty. Art has made its appearance: this is the great characteristic of the age, which distinguishes the Faery Queen from all similar tales heaped up by the middle age. It has been necessary to spend thus much time on the general characteristics of the poem, inasmuch as a connected outline is out of the question. It is the present purpose, however, to consider the Faery Queen from the special stand-point of its soteriologi- cal gist. What saving truths, what lessons does it enforce? Let us glance at the more salient moral elements of the plot. Each of the six surviving books bears a significant title. The first relates 'the Legend of the Knight of the Red Cross, or of Holiness.' The second, the legend of Sir Guyon, or of Temperance. The third, the legend of Britomartis, or of Chastity. The fourth, the legend of Combel and Triamond, or of Friendship. The fifth the legend of Artegail, or of Justice. The sixth, the legend of Sir Calidore, or of Courtesy. Had the last six books been pre- OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS 225 served, it would have been probably found that the other books generally resembled the first six. In the latter, however, it is difficult to guess any coherent theory underlying the choice or disposition of the above virtues. Of course, this artistic incoherence precludes any moral problem such as runs through Goethe's Faust, depicting the solution of a problem, or the formation of a character. It is in other fields that the significance of the poem must be sought. Nor does any moral growth or interest attach to any of the individual personages. They are good or bad, not thanks to their own merits but to the fancy of the poet. They are mere pawns on the chess-board of the poem, each representing some good or evil quality, revealed by its name. For in- stance, three Saracens are 'hight' Sansfoy, Sansjoy, and Sansloy. The witch Duessa is accompanied by Idleness, the nurse by Sin; by Gluttony, riding on a swine, not on an ass, like Idleness ; by Lechery, on a bearded goat; by Avarice, on a camel; by Envy, on a wolf; by Wrath, on a lion; and more such. The House of Holiness is kept by Dame Caslia, mother of three daughters, Fidelia and Speranza, virgins, and Charissa, 'linked to a lovely frere.' Humility, Obedience, and Reverence lead to Penance, Remorse and Repentance, and then to an aged holy man hight Heavenly-Contemplation — 'of God and goodness was his meditation'. Then there is the virgin Una, followed and defended by a lion. The chief spiritual lessons inculcated are : I. Conformity to the Divine Will. For instance, 226 OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS 'Therefore, submit thy Ways unto His Will ; And do, by all due means, thy destiny fulfil.' Again, 'Who help may have elsewhere, In vain seeks wonders out of magic spell.' 2. But the main lesson of the Faery Queen is the Beauty of Holiness — depicted according to the then current standard of taste. Even so secular a critic as Taine would not hesitate to acknowledge that it sets forth principally the Holiness of Beauty; but we may go further, and say it represents also its reverse, the Beauty of Holiness — not in the narrow sense of orthodoxy, but in the truer universal sense of the highest, divinest human life. OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS 227 Byron's M&nfred. Manfred is a great psychodrama. But it is more. It is also full of the true tragic element that attaches to the dramatic experiences of human souls. But this will appear more fully further on. There is little plot. The scene is laid in the Higher Alps, partly in the castle of Manfred. Alone at mid- night in its gothic gallery, Manfred invokes by magic spells the presence of spirits, seven of whom address him, while a star appears at the darker end of the gallery. He seeks balm for his wounded heart; but they can give him only material gifts, of which he has had enough already. Only one favour does he ask: to behold them. One of them appears as a beautiful female figure, which crumbles at his touch. He falls into a swoon, while a Spirit utters an incan- tation over him, dooming him to be his own hell. The next scene presents Manfred on the summit of the Alps, ready to commit suicide. A chamois hunter rescues him from himself, leads Manfred to his hut, and does not let him go until his mood changes, though even this does not imply comfort. Next, Manfred evokes the Witch of the Alps, but refuses her comfort, which Is conditioned on his swearing obedience to her. On the summit of the Jungfrau meet the Three Destinies and Nemesis, hurrying to 228 OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS the Hall of Arimanes, into which Manfred succeeds in introducing himself. He refuses to do reverence to Arimanes, and insists on the latter's evoking the spirit of his dead bride, or friend Lady Astarte, to seek some consolation from her. But the Spirit re- mains silent — only foretelling that at midnight of next day Manfred should find rest — that is, should die. The attending spirits of Arimanes, the ruler of the Earth, admire Manfred, and say, he had been an awful spirit, had he been one of us. Manfred, from his castle, beholds the moon, and goes out to say farewell to it while Manuel and Herman, his serv- ants, confer about the strange happenings. The Abbot of S. Maurice, who once already had endeav- ored to reason with Manfred, forces his way late at night into Manfred's room, to speak one last word of counsel. Manfred tells him it is too late, and advises him to retire. Spirits surround Manfred, desiring to take him away with them, but he with- stands them even to the death. He says that he has attained his power through self-mortification, not through any base agreement with them ; and though the hour of death has come, yet it is not with them, or in their power that he shall go beyond. Discom- fited, they vanish. He dies in the hands of the Abbot, who, good soul, has the grace to say: He's gone, his soul hath ta'en its earthless flight. Whither? I dread to think — but he is gone. It would seem that the whole drama is designed to exhibit the desperate struggles of a soul to be indi- vidual, to be itself. Doubtless social tyranny is still OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS 229 Strong enough today, but in Byron's time of profes- sional tyranny a cry for individual freedom must have seemed nothing less than anarchy, and as such it was relentlessly persecuted. Byron's one ideal of freedom led him to die for it in Greece : greater love than this hath no man. Byron, Shelley, and Ibsen have the same purpose at heart: Freedom: but he who would be free must resign everything he has. Only, Byron never got beyond the point of suffering the loss of all things, and feeling the consequent sor- row. It was so great that it was the death of him; he craved oblivion, balm, and comfort, and finding none in this world, departed. Shelley was greater in this, that he gladly sacrificed his all, and stepping beyond the destructive stand-point, constructed his Promethean ideal of what it were to be a man, and a human race. Ibsen is greater still. Not only does Brand gladly bear the pangs of resignation, not only does he clearly discern his ideal, but he shows how to live It out unflinchingly under modern condi- tions, attaining to individual spiritual attainment, though only in the moment of death. The greater prophet is still to come, who will show how to accom- plish these three steps, and further to live out these divine attainments here on earth before passing be- yond. The stand-point of Byron's Manfred is, then, individuality, freedom, moral responsible action, in- dependence. It may be considered from three stand-points. I. Manfred absolutely refuses conformity with 230 OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS everything except his own conscience, his soul. He will be true to himself, at all hazards. So he refuses obedience to ( i ) society and its traditions. He lives alone, and had both prayed and laboured for the establishment of a newer and better order of society; (2) to the church, in the person of the Abbot of S. Maurice, that harmless sheep of a good old man, who is too stupid to have any inkling of the higher realm of thought and action in which Manfred lives, and who has so poor a conception of morality that he offers Manfred waiving of all punishment here- after if he will only profess belief in the church ! (3) to the several spirits: first to the Witch of the Alps, who offers comfort at the price of an oath of obe- dience to her; then to Arimanes, who expects wor- ship ; and finally to the spirits who crowd around him just before he dies. Through no compact with them has he gained his power, but by superior science, skill, penance, daring, and firmness of mind. I have not been thy dupe, nor am I thy prey, but was my own destroyer, and will be hereafter. Back, ye baffled fiends ! The hand of Death is on me, but not yours ! II. By experience Manfred finds that to remain faithful to the search after truth, after the higher life, he must be prepared to resign all things. ( i ) Human sympathy. The only ones who are near to him are the hunter and the servants, and they are not sufficiently of his order to understand him. (2) Physical comfort. He has gladly done long penance, fasting, watching, sleepless meditation. (3) Social position. Fie lives as plainly as his servants, he who OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS 23 1 could have his castle full of carousing guests. (4) The escape of Suicide. Gladly he resigns even that gate into the longed-for rest and oblivion. (5) Woman's Love. Lady Astarte had been as noble in mind as he, but her womanly emotions had been too much for her. When he endeavoured to draw her after him, she pined away and died, being unable to rise to his position of self-consecration to the Divine. Heroically had he borne all. But it had broken him. He dare not take that step into the divine Light which he had earned; he breaks down after all is gone. The memory of Lady Astarte haunts him, so that he becomes desperate, and accuses himself of her misfortune, which she herself was the cause of. Surely, the rationalisation of the whole being kills the heart, if by that is meant reducing it to absolute subjection to the reason. And so the stupid, blind Abbot declares his power at an end since Manfred's heart is dead. On the contrary, the trouble with Manfred was that his heart had been so great a portion of his life that when it was reduced to disci- pline he was broken. This is the point of the taunt of the Witch of the Alps, that he cannot forget flesh in contemplation of the Divine. That is why Man- fred, perceiving one of the spirits in the form of Astarte, sees again a chance of happiness, but is dis- appointed. So he is broken. He who once had hoped to be the enlightener of the nations is now willing to give it all up. He desires oblivion; but why? Because his is that divine discontent that leads Godwards. He has 232 OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS given up further conquest, and now this restlessness torments him. Instead of seeking oblivion, he should have proceeded further, completed the sacrifice, and received the divine reward. This is what Goethe makes Faust do : instead of atoning for Gretchen's death with his own, he atoned for it by a nobler life. Surely that was the nobler part: which Manfred, yet stung in the flesh by the sins of his youth, and their consequent sorrow, is not strong enough to do. Hence merciful Destiny relieves him, crowning him with the crown of those who have not, indeed, wholly conquered the foe and reaped the reward, but of those who fell on the field of battle, while the battle was still undecided. And as Manfred died thus, so did Byron also on the fields of Greece. Honour to the fallen hero! OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS 233 Ibsen's Brand. Ibsen's Dramatic Poem of Brand sets forth self- consecration to God, as opposed to selfishness, al- though it may seem to have been written merely as a protest against the faults of Ibsen's fellow-Norwe- gians. But its contents should speak for themselves. The First Act is a matter of an introduction. Cross- ing a mountain to catch a steamer to leave home, Brand successively deals with three groups of charac- ters: The peasant and his son, Einar, and Agnes, his betrothed, and Gerda, representing, respectively. Mean Ideals, Superficiality and Insanity. With these three, "war to the hilt," says the militant Brand. The Second Act reveals Brand at the landing place of the steamers. There stand a crowd of simple country people, who, starving on account of the famine, are having provisions weighed out for them. A woman arrives in haste, to tell her husband has gone insane from starving, and has killed one of his own chil- dren. Brand, in the midst of a fearful storm, springs into a boat. Who will go with him and help ? None of the peasants can be induced to risk their lives, but Agnes springs into the boat, which arrives safely. They do their utmost for the dying murderer. After a while the men arrive, and one of them offers to help the widow and children a little. Brand, the whole-souled, says : "Even if you give all, but keep 234 OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS back your life, you have given nothing." Then the man whom Brand had addressed offers Brand the position of pastor of the small community. Brand, looking forward to greater usefulness beyond, re- fuses. The man answers : "Alas for thee, thy spark of light has died out. Alas for us, we begin to see, now is it dark." Agnes prophetically points him higher, "Whether thou diest or livest, push on to the Light; dare it!" He is willing to sacrifice all except place to work in. His mother arrives. She will give him all the money she has saved through bitter sac- rifice if he will only not waste his life, but go on to greater work beyond the retired valley in which he was born. Brand both refuses to be bought and to recognize her as his mother until she shall have vol- untarily given away all of the money which has be- come her very soul, and for which she had been willing to steal a large amount from her dying hus- band. She hoped to atone for this by letting her son become a clergyman. Her money has become her soul. Will she be strong enough to give her money away voluntarily? Brand will not go near her till she redeems her soul by doing this. Brand, who was determined that the old God should be destroyed, is reminded of his duty to devote his life, "all or noth- ing," to work in this country place, and Agnes elects to stay with him, rather than to follow Einar into the great world. She is ready, faithful to death, to consecrate "all or nothing." Three years pass. Brand and Agnes are married, and have a child. News comes of his mother's sickness unto death. She OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS 235 sends repeatedly for him, but offers to give away only half, then three-quarters, then seven-eighths of her goods, and dies before she has fully repented, to the anguish of Brand, who, however, cannot give her the last sacrament till she does. His little son is becoming sick in this neighbourhood, from the rigor- ous climate, and to save his life Brand is willing to leave the place and go South. But the physician ridi- cules him ; for your mother you held fast to principle ; for your own child you will go. "Such is one who would be a conqueror of the world!" Brand sees he was blind, and resists his wife's most earnest en- treaties. Agnes lifts up her child on high: "God, must I give this child to Thee ? Let me lift it to the heavens. Teach Thou me my heavy duty." Brand cries, "Jesus, Jesus, give me light." Thus he remains to be the moral support of the simple country folk whose touch with God has all come through his presence. The Fourth Act shows the further sacrifice. It is Christmas. The child is buried. Agnes' heart is with her child in its grave. She leaves the window open so that the light may shine on it on Christmas night. She has not conformed her will to God's, yet Brand seeks to comfort her, but she tells him all her sorrow, including her desire for a Church larger than the little chapel in which the community has worshipped. Brand will build one with his mother's money, and the Governor, who wanted to build an asylum, in order to stand favorably with the people at the time of election, veers round to Brand's plan. But Agnes is with her child. She cleans the panes 236 OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS SO that the light may shine better on the grave. Brand closes the shutters, lest she lose her hold on God. She must be willing to give all things to God, not from compulsion, but voluntarily. As she is looking over her dead baby's clothes a poor woman with a freezing baby comes to ask for babies' clothes. Brand asks Agnes for all of them, and Agnes gives them voluntarily. But as soon as the woman Is gone she breaks in tears, takes from her breast the child's cap that had been moistened with the perspiration of its death agony, and gives it to Brand. "I lied," said she. "Do you give It voluntarily or not?" "Volun- tarily." "I am free. Brand, at last." "The Victory took my last strength." "No man can see Jehovah and live." "Good-night * * * soon am I in port." Brand, In agony at loss of her, cries : "That alone remains with us forever which we lost." The last Act is one and a half years later. Agnes is dead. The Church is completed. It Is the day for the consecration of the Church. A great festival, in honour of Brand, Is made ready. All the neighbour- ing clergy are present. The ecclesiastical superior of Brand Is here also. He has a conversation with Brand. If Brand desires to have advancement, or even to be continued in his position, he must be will- ing to preach less individualistic doctrine. The Church Is only a kind of police; what is wanted is exhortation to obedience, not morality and self-con- secration to God. Will Brand do this? At the last moment, instead of going to the Church with the assembled multitude, he closes the Church, throws the key into the fyord, and voluntarily gives up his OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS 237 position, and states his reasons. The common peo- ple promise to follow him. He leads them on the top of the mountain. It is cold, and slippery. The Governor, through misrepresentations, leads them to return, after stoning Brand. Desolate, he sits on the rocks alone. Gerda, the insane gipsy-girl, comes near, and, under pretence of shooting an imaginary bird, starts an avalanche which covers both. It must be said that the climax is unfortunate in this, that Ibsen does not make clear to what purpose Brand leads them into the mountain, unless it be to found a new settlement. "To live is one and the same thing with serving God . . ." this is a divine principle for a whole people to live by; but it does not appear what use could come of them all follow- ing Brand to the peak of the mountain. But such reflections before so great, so divine a work are out of place. "Brand" is yet the noblest character in literature. Who will deny himself? Who will follow me? Who will devote his life to the Lord's work in spite of every circumstance? Who will fight out the battle in his own home ? Who will remain unharmed by temptation, and pure in spite of external success? Verily, it is the hero. But one heroism would have been greater still: to con- tinue living in spite of it all, after loss of child, wife, fortune, and position: to have remained living, though dead to the world. But that drama has not been written, and will never be written : for the mys- teries of the Kingdom can never be told from mouth to mouth. 238 OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS Victor Hugo's "God/ One of the most significant of modern utterances is Hugo's "God," a poem which he wrote while in exile in Jersey. It is a symbolic poem, which seeks to answer the question, "What think ye of God?" What is the Truth ? What is the result of so much science and speculation? Can the Truth be known? Are all religions, or only some of them, true? What is the heart of it all? The machinery of the Poem is simple. The Book is divided into three parts, entitled respectively: I, Ascension through the Darkness; II, God; and III, Daylight. I. Ascension through the Darkness. It is divided into two portions: (i) The Mind of the Pluman, and (2) The Voices. ( i) The Mind of the Human. "And I saw afar above me a black point. As one sees a fly moving upon the ceiling, this point came, went, and the dark- ness was sublime. And, as man, when he thinks, is winged, and as the abyss attracted me more and more into Its gloom, I felt myself already flying to- wards it, when I was stopped by the word. Stay. A hand was stretched out. And I saw a strange figure appear, a being covered with mouths, wings, eyes, living, almost desolate, almost radiant. Vast though OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS 239 it was, it flew * * * nightmare of the flesh or vision of the apostle, as he showed one or another face, now beast, now spirit, leaving behind him a track of dark- ness now, and now a ray of light. What is thy name? It answered. For thee, who, far from the cause-world, driftest, blind to but one side of things at a time, I am the Human Spirit, the Mind of the Human. My name is Legion, now brutal Instinct, now divine impulse." It is the Mind of Humanity, the representative Man, the Grand Man of the Earth, if not of the Heavens in Swedenborgian dia- lect. "V7hat seekest thou, for I can tell thee all things? No miracle is too great for me." "I seek HIM." It disappeared, in loud laughter. Once more the poet cries for light and knowledge of HIM. A second laugh. Then the "enormous resultance of the Earth, the Reason," reappeared, and from it de- tached themselves forms which spoke as follows : (2) The Voices. The First Voice asks. Do you expect to find that which the great men of all time have not found ? The Second, Why will you not learn the enduring calm of nature, which alone abides? The Third, after recounting the various beliefs of the philosophers of all times. Is there anything of which man is sure? The Fourth, Will you not take example by the great thinkers, who all have begun with courage and ended in bowed despair? The Fifth, Concerning which of the many Gods Is It that you desire the truth? "I long for the Name of the True God, that I may repeat It to the suffering Earth." Are you a poet? And yet the poets can 240 OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS do more than all others, though even they cannot name God, cries the Sixth. The Seventh, Is not the Name of the multiform God simply all that exists? "The infinite mouth can alone utter the infinite Name." The Eighth, Why seek that which to seek may risk annihilation for thyself? The Ninth, How dost thou dare to seek God, who art only a grain of dust? The Tenth, Will not the Atom alone satisfac- torily account for the whole Universe, without any further God? Is it the enigma of God that troubles thee? Piece together, if you please, all existing the- ologies, and you will be no further than you are to- day, says ironically the Eleventh. Lost, I cried, It is impossible that the end of all be Nought. "It cannot be! Great Unknown, evil or good ! Great Invisible One ! I tell it thee to thy Face, O Being, It cannot be 1" A third laughter. All is gloom. II. God. Victor Hugo now enumerates symboli- cally some of the forms of religion so far accepted. The Bat, Atheism, with motto "Nihil," is the first Being the poet meets, when flying upwards to what seemed a black point. "God does not exist, God does not exist, O Despair I" All is gloom. "And I saw afar above me a black point." It turns out to be an immense Owl, Scepticism, with motto, "Quid?" In sublime language Hugo describes the agonies of Doubt. "I grapple myself to God, in the darkness, without one single stable spot to hold on to." "And I was alone. * * * And I saw afar above me a black point." It was a tremendous Crow, Manichasism, OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS 241 with motto, "Duplex." "They are two fighters * * and the fight constitutes the world." "The jaguar for ever devours the gazelle." Chaos Is their play- thing, and if Ormuzd but for a moment should sleep, "the extinguished star will seek a vanished world." "And I saw afar above me a black point." It was a huge Vulture, Paganism, with motto, "Multiplex." And yet behind the Greek Gods is Matter. Man is the toy of monsters; he commits the crime, the evil which the Gods gave birth to. It was not worth while living and carrying on the moral struggle. Prometheus, who sought freedom, was destroyed. Yet, if man will not let the torch be put out, he shall still attain power and beauty. "And I saw afar above me a black point." It was a glorious Eagle, Mosaicism, "Unus." The day begins to break. Behold, "Afar above me I saw a black point." It was the Winged Lion, Christianity, "Triplex." Its word is "Pardon." Whosoever thou mayest be, O Boat, turn thy prow Godwards. * * * Q Eagle, the holiness of the human soul is such that in the depths of the highest heaven, where brightness smiles, where Father and Son are mingled with the Spirit, the azure of the sky equalizes and commingles, Jesus the soul of man, and God, the soul of the world. The Eagle could only say, I have seen God, Holy, holy, holy. "And I saw above me afar a black point." It was an Archangel, Rationalism, "Homo," Man. God is truth. Neither vengeful nor clement, but just. No eternal Hell. What, God worse than Shylock? Never. None punished for the sins of others. "With 242 OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS heavy blows of science, with strong blows of ax, the living are right, in their darkness, to sketch, and plan out, to rough-hew the immense statue of Truth. Man is the sculptor, mystery is the marble. Pro- ceed." Beauty is thy right. iEschylos and Shake- speare "are in the right, O Earth, in covering the ceiling of thy prison with stars." Struggle, spirit of Man ! The Angel now sang, now prayed. One wing stretched to the light, one towards the darkness. Sor- row? It is only the preparation for the joy. What waitest thou, O Man? Go, proceed to the very bot- tom of the mystery God! Hasten! Investigate! "The spark of God, the soul is in everything. The world is an ensemble where nothing is alone. Each body masks a spirit; each flesh is a shroud; would' st thou see the soul? Lift the face-cloth." All that creeps expiates a fall from heaven. The stone is a cellar where dreams a criminal. Take care, spirit! Act not so that thou beest hidden from God, for whom thy conscience wakes within thee ! See to it that God be the object of thy love and desire. There is no pariah in the Universe. Even Cain may greet thee as an archangel ! Be witness, O sky, the Helot and Slave is the brother of the Sun! We seek not forgiveness, but Justice, which is beyond all eternity. "And I saw afar above me a black point." It was a light, with two white wings, and which seemed to me, when I saw it from afar, dark, so glorious was the sky above it. It was "The Light," that which as yet has no name, but whose motto is "Deus." Matter exists not as such; spirit alone can live. God has but OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS 243 one forehead, and it is light; He has but one name, and it is Love. "I trembled * * * I ^as overcome as if by a holy kiss. The light gleamed, and I asked. Light, is this all of it? But it answered. Silence. The Eternal Prodigy eternally proceeds from mys- tery. Blind man who thinkest thou readest; insane who thinkest thou knowest ! "And I saw afar above me a black point." in. Day-light. And it took the form of a face- cloth. The Being spoke. All that thou hast heard till now were theories. Wilt thou dare to enter the infinite, whatever be its gate? Yea! "Then, lifting an arm and with a cloth covering all terrestrial ob- jects, with his Finger he touched my forehead. And I died." Who would lift the veil of the Statue of Sals must die. None can see God and live. Would a man actually come face to face with God and behold the Beatific Vision? He must die to the world, and live to God only. 244 OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS Tolstoi's Power of Darkness. Tolstoi's great drama, "The Power of Darkness," is as tragic and affecting as tfie Eumenides of ^scfiy- los. Tlie hero is indeed not a man of high station, but a simple peasant, as there are many more. It is the moral power of the drama which lifts it to so high a plane. It is too terrible to be put on the stage, yet no closing scene in modern literature is more dra- matic and fateful. Its theme Is the fatality by which one sin leads to another, from which there is no res- cue but voluntary punishment, after open confession. The latter is one of the most powerful of the themes of Ibsen: but he never represents it joined to imme- diate punishment. This, if possible, exalts the moral power. The first Act reveals Nikita dwelling on the farm of Peter, an old man, with the reputation of being a miser, and of having a sum of money concealed some- where, and for the sake of which Annissja has mar- ried him. Nikita is a good-looking young peasant, strong and powerful, on whom Annissja casts favour- able glances, much to the distress of Akullna, Peter's daughter. Nikita's father, an old man, simple but devout, desires that Nikita shall leave Peter's service, and marry Marina, an orphan, whom Nikita had wronged, and was inconsolable. Matrena, Nikita's mother, on the contrary, when she finds out the state OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS 245 of affairs In Peter's household, that in the event of Peter's death Nikita stood a chance of stepping into his shoes, forces Akim to hire Nikita to Peter for another period, Nikita himself denying his misdeed. The second act tells of the death of Peter. An- nissja is in despair, because she had never gotten hold of Peter's money (for which she had married him), and on his death-bed he was asking for his sister, evidently to give his money to her. The critical time has arrived; shall she see the prize elude her at the last moment, when for it she has served as a slave for years? Peter is dying anyway; merely to hasten his death by the ten minutes necessary to search him for the money before his sister should come, by 'sleeping powders' is not killing — so Matrena urges, and Annissja obeys. The stolen money must be hid- den during the funeral — Nikita is false to this trust, and hides it on his own account. Nine months pass between the Second and Third Acts. Nikita has married Annissja, but has retained the money and put it in bank, living off the interest. He neglects Annissj a and makes love to Akulina, tak- ing her to town with him, and buying her fashionable clothes. But Annissja, though complaining of being deceived, dares not tell anybody of the cause. AkIm comes In late in the afternoon, but Nikita and Aku- lina have not yet returned from the city. He comes to borrow from his son ten roubles, because his horse died lately; but when he hears that Nikita lives off the money,— which to the simple peasantry and to Tolstoi seems usury — and when he sees how Nikita takes sides with Akulina when the latter quarrels with 246 OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS Annlssja, and drives her out of the house In the dark night, he throws the money back into the hands of his son, and refuses to have anything more to do with him, and walks home in the middle of the stormy night. But sin leads to sin. The fruit of Akulina's sin is to be born. They have managed to get a soldier to come and woo her, and he wants to see her; but she does not come out, and all manner of excuses are made, and by paying him, he expresses himself will- ing to marry her without seeing her. The truth was that Akullna was in the pangs of birth. What shall they do with the child, whose presence would break up the prospective match, the only chance of covering up her sin? Matrena comes on the scene and decides the child is to be smothered and buried in the cellar. She tries to force Nikita to kill it, by threats and compulsion. If he does not kill the child, which she says is only half alive yet, she will tell the police of his taking Annissja's money, implicating him in the murder, and will reveal his sin with Akullna. An- nlssja, raging, absolutely forces him to kill the child, as a kind of revenge for his falseness to her: the revenge Is that he, too, makes himself guilty of mur- der. Finally he smothers the child with a board, but hears its groans by day and night afterwards. They give him wine to quiet him. The Last Act is the masterpiece. Everything is ready for Akulina's marriage. The guests have ar- rived, the feast is over, nothing is wanting except the blessing of Nikita, in the capacity of father-in-law. But he cannot be found. He has retired to the barn OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS 247 and has hidden himself in the straw. He cannot be moved to enter the house. The feast is prolonged, and nobody yet suspects anything. No persuasion will move him. Annjutka, Matrena, the drunken Annissja — all in vain. He tries to hang himself. But a drunken servant holds on the rope, and boast-- he fears nobody. This makes Nikita think. He too, will fear nobody. He goes in and falls on his knees. He makes all listen. He tells all the fearful crimes, taking everything on himself. The women try to hush him, but in the face of the police-officer who brutally tries to bind him while he is yet speak- ing, Nikita confesses everything, and makes a clean breast, in generosity freeing everybody from blame except himself. Akim is delighted, and makes all wait until Nikita has made his full confession before God and the assembled company, begging pardon from each person whom he had wronged. At last Akim ecstatically cries out, 'God forgives thee, my darling child ! Thou hast had no pity for thyself — thou hast not spared thyself — God will have pity with thee, yea, God !' Akulina insists on taking some of the guilt, 'I will tell the truth, ask me !' But Nikita says: 'There is nothing further to be asked; I alone have done all; mine was the thought, and mine was the deed. Lead me away; I will say no more.' It is the world's glory to have given birth to liter- ature whose leit-motiv is not passion, nor physical prowess, nor intrigue social or political, nor crime — but moral heroism; it is a token of the coming of the time when all men shall be moral heroes and gods. 248 OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS Madach's Tragedy cf Humanity. Eastwards are we called to the crucible in which the Slavonic race is being transmuted into higher culture. Political individuality, and consequent im- mortality, will most probably be denied them; the alien Mongol Hungarian throttles that kindly race. Numerically in marked minority, the Hungarian has, by shger trumpeting, succeeded in keeping the centre of the stage in language, institutions, politics and wealth. By sublime insolence it has persuaded the average European that it constitutes the predomi- nance of that part of the world. The keynote of their civihzation is, therefore, the apotheosis of bluff, and it will not be uninteresting or unprofitable to examine what literary or philosophical fruit such national characteristics will bear. Conscious of the hollowness of their successful claims, and conscious that their success is due to this self-advertisement, they would naturally suppose that all other success was as much of a fraud. Vanity, all is vanity, says the Hungarian preacher, Madach; and if this is a mere coincidence with the national characteristic of self-exploitation it will certainly to us very satisfactorily represent the moral attitude of the Hungarian race, whose claim to freedom, as uttered by their well advertised advance agent, Kos- suth, really meant freedom for themselves only, and OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS 249 slavery for others. They were merely tired of being oppressed; they wanted to put their hands in at oppressing somebody else, as their later actions against the Serbs abundantly testifies. Madach's 'Tragedy of Humanity' consists of fourteen scintillating panoramic visions that come to Adam as the result of eating of the tree of knowl- edge. In Egypt as a Pharaoh, in Athens as Miltia- des, in Rome as a Sybarite, in Constantinople as Tancred, in Prague as Kepler, in Paris as Danton, in London as a merchant in a future socialistic Pha- lanstery; in the darkness of space conversing with the Earth Spirit, and at last, when all heat shall have been exhausted, in association with the last Esquimau in the then Polar regions. Adam ever attempts to renew a struggle for greater culture, and is ever driven back. The final philosophy is, that Knowledge, Science and Progress are only terrestrial, and will perish with the world. There is no future, or progress on earth, only suffering; while beyond, the soul can at least count on eternal life. To attain this, man must be made to resign sense enjoyment; and if he realized that his soul was doomed to destruction he would have no motive to do this. Hence, man is actually deceived into that resignation by a 'feeling of infinity,' caused by 'un- certain cloud-dimmed visions of a roseate future.' And lest this vision, even, should mislead to pride, life is so short that its transitoriness preserves 'Soul- 250 OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS greatness' and 'Virtue.' We have here, therefore, the apotheosis of Igno- rance and Self-deceit. Let me summarize. God wants man to continue struggling and trusting; to induce him to do so, God speaks to man by the Voice of Conscience, and has given him Woman to preserve 'artistic conceptions.' OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS 25 I Wilbrandt's Master cf Palmyra. The universal applause which Wilbrandt's 'Master of Palmyra' has earned throughout the Teutonic World shows us that this message of cheer is rep- resentative of the race. Instinct with the learning of German universities, Wilbrandt has chosen as site for his drama the mystic city of Palmyra, or Tadmor, in the Syrian desert, whose historic heroic defence of the Roman world against the Persians furnishes the introductory act, Apelles distinguish- ing himself as the victorious general. As reward therefor he receives from Death, who masquerades as a certain Pausanias, the boon that he shall never die. As contrast to this earth-desiring and clinging Apelles, Wilbrandt imagines a female soul, who sets on the attainment of her ideal of heaven a value higher than on possession of this life; and the pur- pose of the drama is to decide which of these two souls, in the long run, gains most. During his one single long life Apelles is restricted to the lessons learned in one existence, and suffers the inevitable disappointments resulting from vain efforts to arrest the mutability of circumstances. From his side per- ish four generations of loved ones, till weariness and loneliness drive him to such despair that he implores the divinities for the privilege of dying. For this 252 OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS world-weariness teaches him that he has, In spite of his immortality, been the loser, in contrast with his woman companion's soul, which, during the same period of time, as Zoe, learned the lesson of religious sincerity; as Phoebe, that of youthful love; as Per- sida, that of married love; as Nymphas, that of civil heroism; and last, as Zenobia, in whose arms the- life-weary Apelles is permitted to expire, that of royal power. Wilbrandt's message is, therefore, that of the inevitableness and profit of change — of death and resurrection ; without change, progress is impossible ; retention of life would be widowing ourselves of ever meeting our own ideals; the sun must set, to rise again ; as also the 'hymn to Adonis,' repeated in the tragedy, so well expresses : "This is the will of Jupiter : Thou must descend beneath the flowery earth, thou must kiss dark Per- sephone, O beautiful Adonis. "In the Spring, when the water-springs begin to murmur, thou shalt rise again, O youth 1 Mourned, thou shalt cheerfully kiss blond Aphrodite, O beau- tiful Adonis." OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS 253 Kr&sinsky's Infernal Comedy. A Catholic Polish exile of the nobility, watching the objectification which the French Revolution gave to the 'Rights of Man,' could not reasonably be expected to view it in any light other than an 'In- fernal Comedy.' If Krasinsky was a Catholic not by conviction, he was by compulsion ; however much he sympathized with the principles of the French Revolution, he shrank back from their application, and preferred to end his life in a hopeless defense of the castle of the 'Trinity,' and die in its ruins. Such were Erasmus, Coleridge, Manfred and Ham- let — inflamed with the truth, but repelled by the coarseness and brutality of its partisans. It is a double tragedy — not only of the body, but also of the personality; to aspire toward the good, but to be constrained not only to tolerate the evil, but even to defend it — ^by the fear of worse — the apprehen- sion of moral annihilation. Hamlet only saw the good, and felt himself powerless against evil. Kra- sinsky's Count Henry suffers a further torment, that of being compelled to defend what he partially de- spises, lest worse follow. While indeed we who live in nineteenth century republics see the futil- ity of these fears, encouraged by Lincoln, who was not afraid to trust the people, we must not forget that Krasinsky lived amidst the terrors and mis* 254 OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS fortunes of the French Revolution, which, indeed, temporarily failed under the Empire and the Res- toration. Though we do not live in such times, many of us undergo conditions just as hopeless, and to many of us the clouds of despair are just as potent as they were to Krasinsky. Krasinsky, therefore, found this fault with the French revolutionary leaders, that they lacked the 'good wiir of those to whom the Angel of the An- nunciation announced peace. They were impelled by emotion, not sentiment; they had failed to realize this ideal in their own personalities. 'Some I hate, the others I scorn!' cries Count Henry; and if he must take his choice, he will defend the orthodoxy he scorns. It is no more a question of progress; it is a question of repelling savagery. But time has chastened this savagery, and nowadays Krasinsky's aristocratic poet could, with perfect comfort, carry out his ideals. However, his drama is of eternal significance, for the pangs of birth of liberty have everywhere been difficult, and leaders of liberty should take this lesson, that lack of self-control on their part will do their cause more harm than the opposition of the enemy. The drama begins with the angel's blessing to men of good will. The poet marries, consenting to earthly bonds, because he has found his ideal bride. The Evil Spirit in dreams persuades the poet-bride- groom he is cursed for having abandoned his ideal bride, poesy, with whom he makes an appointment. At the time of the baby's baptism the Spectre enters and beseeches Count Henry to follow him. To him OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS 255 it appears a beautiful woman, but to the wife it appears a skeleton. The wife's horror of it antago- nizes the Count, who still sees in it his ideals, and he leaves her. At the baptism the wife wishes the child to become a poet, to please and win back the father. In the meanwhile the Count has found out the Spectre's decaying skeleton. He returns home, but the wife's grief had robbed her of sanity, and she had been removed to an asylum. He seeks her there, and finds she had tried to become a poetess, to please him, and dies in his arms. The Second Part opens at the wife's grave. The father is educating his blind child, who claims he sees the mother inspiring him to utter fantastic po- etry; the father prays to God the child may keep his reason. A rationalist philosopher indulges in fantastic social aspirations, and the Count likens their ideal Social State to a tree whose roots are already dead. The Guardian Angel advises the Count to seek Salvation in works of charity, but Mephistophe- les and a black eagle advise him never to stop till he has subdued all his enemies. A physician declares the child's blindness hopeless; the Count does not know to what God to pray; and a Satanic voice cries : "Thy son is a poet, as thou desirest; canst thou ask for more?" Thus are the revolutionary dreamers and poets hopelessly blind. And even while the father is trying to nurse the child he is called to lead masses of men at the hour of combat. The third part opens in the camp of the Revolu- 256 OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS tionists. Jews are rejoicing that the Christians are put on the defensive, as the revolutionary leader Leonard comes, and directs them to prepare for battle. He leads one of them to the tent of the Commander-in-chief, Pancras, who sends the Jew as messenger to Henry, the defender of the Chris- tian fortress of 'the Trinity,' to invite him to a midnight consultation. Count Henry, in disguise, accompanies the Jew through a crowd of common people whose coarse brutalities disgust him. He sees Leonard and a young girl impersonating liberty and fraternity in a symbolic play that ends in obscene joy at the mur- der of the ancient tyrants. Henry dismisses the Jew with money in the red liberty cap, remarking that both go together; he himself will use the motto, "Jesus and my sword." In midnight conference, Pancras and Leonard attempt to win over Count Henry, representative of the aristocracy. The demo- crat seeks to reawaken Count Henry's old weakness for poetic ideals, but the ideas of 'fatherland, home and honor' recall him to a defense of the representa- tives of culture and tradition. The Fourth Part opens in the Cathedral of the Fort of the Trinity. Henry is acclaimed chief, and promises the nobles fame; it is their part to procure victory from God. When all is hopeless the nobles show their baseness by proposing to yield, but on being found out, proclaim their devotion to the death. Count Henry, even to the last, will command, fight and live. Before the fight he seeks his blind OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS 257 child, George, who sees a vision of judgment in which appears the mother. George faints, and as Count Henry seeks to reanimate him, are heard voices, "For having loved nothing but thyself and thy thoughts, thou art eternally damned." The nobles rebel against Henry, but he subdues them by pointing out that their ruin was due to the useless- ness of their lives in times of prosperity. On the ramparts the Count says farewell to George, who is shot by a ball. When all others are killed the Count prepares to throw himself down. "I see it, my terrible eternity — darkness without limit or end — in the midst of it, God, like a sun that shines eternally, and sheds light on nothing; cursed be thou, O Poetry, as thou hast cursed me." The nobles had secretly surrendered, but they are executed. Count Henry alone had died nobly.. Pancras, now victor, visits the ramparts, but even amidst the cries of triumph of his followers grows faint at a vision of the Cross, which shows the Crucified One with a conquering sword in his hand. Pancras dies, crying out, 'Thou hast conquered, Galilean.' Religion alone survives poetry, aristocracy and democracy. 258 OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS Campoamor's Universal Drama. Campoamor is Spain's latest great poet, only re- cently gathered to his immortal forbears. He was a Heine, a Byron, an ^Esop, a Genestet, a Milton, all in one ; and it is this very universality which won him his universal applause. It is his 'Universal Drama' in which he has enshrined his noblest visions. This recent apocalypse is written in a Dante-like stanza, and is divided into forty-eight successive scenes. Its crisis is filial and affecting: his mother's tears, placed on his forehead by his beloved, close the mouth of hell, absorb all his sins, and turn his repentant soul heavenward under the escort of his mother. The drama begins with a purely earthly story, whose ethical complications demand for their unraveling the course of the drama. The names of the principal characters portray clearly enough our author's meaning. The heroine is Solitude, a nun ; the hero is Hono- rio, the chivalric Don Quixote, who has for mother. Peace, and for brother, Palaclano, who represents worldly power. There Is, however, one character so unusual to us that I shall describe him more clearly. Out of reverence for Jesus Christ, who appears only at the culmination of the epic, Compoa- OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS 259 mor imagines another Jesus, entitled Magus, whose duty it is to carry out all the details of salvation as guardian angel, adviser and inspirer. He is identi- fied as the young man who 'fled naked' on that fateful night when Jesus was taken from Gethsemane to Gabbatha. The action of the Drama is divided into eight days. FIRST DAY Honorio, jealous of Soledad's love for Palaciano, shuts up the latter in a living tomb. Soledad, drink- ing of the fountain of Forgetfulness, goes into a convent, and dies of grief. This is the story whose ethical unraveling leads to the SECOND DAY Honorio prays to Jesus Magus to be transformed into the marble over her tomb. But when Palaciano, liberated, comes to visit this, her tomb, Honorio's shade, in anger, rises above the marble, and begins to suffer the purificatory progressive chastisements that Jesus Magus had planned for his gradual sanc- tification. Having operated some miracles at the tomb, Honorio is first worshipped in idolatrous fash- ion. His indignation at this constitutes the merit which frees him from the marble, and enables him to drive away the dead souls that are supposed to haunt such places. But his grief for Solitude re- turns, and draws him into incarnation in a cjrpress tree over her grave. We now turn to the fate of Solitude. Thou^ arrived in heaven, she looks down on Honorio's 26o OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS love, and its faithfulness makes her wish to redeem him. So she leaves heaven — thereby incurring ex- clusion. Lost in darkness, she prays for enough light to see earth. As in her prayer she chances to utter the name of Jesus Magus, this, his name, creates a ray of light, in which she is able to reach earth, and to destroy her own ashes, so as to free Honorio from the spot. But Honorio, not recog- nizing her, curses her for thus destroying the object of his affection, whereupon another ray sets the tree on fire, and frees him from the cypress. He imme- diately flees to Jesus Magus, who on him rains down hopes. THIRD DAY But the peace of hope wearies Honorio. His aspirations lead him to incarnate in an eagle. He flies to the region 'where is heard the truth of all that is said' ; but what he hears there terrifies him, and drives him away. In the region where 'is seen the truth of all that is done' he sees, for instance, that Cassar crossed the Rubicon in obedience to an omen of birds, which, however, had been caused by a mere accident. This danger to those who seek guidance seems to be verified by his own experience, and in grief Honorio flees. He arrives at the region 'where is understood the truth of all that is thought,' and here he sees Dante deceived by his own dreams. But here he hears Palaciano's prayer for Soledad, and jealousy again causes him to flee; and he flees repeatedly, because he has not yet found his mother. Peace, OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS 26 1 Now he comes to a Cathedral where Soledad's statue had been placed on an altar, and, on entering by a window, executed what actually chanced to occur on May 21, 1469, in Valencia, when a bird overturned the sacred lamp, which set the altar on fire, and melted the sacred plate. The eagle is caught, and condemned to be burned, and in this suffering Honorio pays for his crimes. FOURTH DAY His next incarnation is in a young novice who comes for ordination to Palaciano, who has now become a bishop. 'To live is to remember,' says Campoamor. So, to remind Honorio of his former existence, Soledad temporarily transfigures herself into a woman who had come to confess to Honorio. The latter is thereby exalted by a dim but glorious memory of former love, and utters a song entitled the 'Pantheism of the Heart,' in which it would seem that love was the guiding element that led man's progress from hereafter to hereafter. Sadness overwhelms Honorio, and Bishop Pala- ciano, endeavoring to cheer him, finds among Hono- rio's papers a poem entitled 'The Rosary of the Paraclete,' which we give in substance below. The Bishop causes Honorio to be burned for impiety, and himself dies of regret at having done so. At night, in the Cathedral, before Palaciano's tomb, the spirits of the two brothers meet, to accuse each other of their misdeeds. Suddenly Jesus Magus appears in the pulpit, and condemns Palaciano to go and convert the fanatic religious murderers he 262 OUTLINES or GREAT DRAMAS himself had set on his brother; and while Soledad kneels down in prayer for both, Honorio is con- demned to go, by way of the Milky Way, to the planet where are purified the lazy or inactive. Here he is to find his mother, Peace, who is there punished for not having better taught her sons the path of virtue. As Honorio passes by the starry vault he hears the 'Hymn of Pythagoras,' part of which is also given below. FIFTH DAY So Honorio successively visits the planets of Lazi- ness, of Avarice, of Greediness, led by his mother, who in each introduces him to historic characters who there are enduring penance. Passing over the Milky Way, Honorio and Peace find a dying world, an extinguished planet of Impurity, divided into the five divisions of the human senses. Here they meet Palaciano, who had succeeded in the mission to which he had been condemned, and was now leading the converted suffering souls back to earth to begin anew the lives in which they had formerly failed. SIXTH DAY At this point occurs a meeting of Honorio, Pala- ciano, Solitude, Peace and Jesus Magus, and after the latter's exhortations they part, each heaving sighs which some day should unite into the formation of some new world. SEVENTH DAY Peace and Honorio arrive at a dry planet which contains a paradise in which the envious see what they envy; but seeing there Palaciano's desire for OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS 263 Solitude, Honorio flees once more. He arrives at a skeleton of a star, where are purified souls guilty of anger and murder, among whom is Nero. Next he comes to the misty planet of pride, where the Spaniard, Campoamor, of course places England's Virgin Queen Elizabeth. The four sighs of our friends unite to give birth to a new world to take the place of the dead planet of Impurity, whose first gyration was caused by the kiss of its first man and woman. But alas I this new Eve sits alone by a fountain, weeping because her new Adam had left her. Peace, on coming up to her, as would be done even to-day, advises resigna- tion; but just at that moment Eve thinks she hears her Adam somewhere stirring, and she flees to his embrace. EIGHTH DAY Honorio and Jesus Magus find themselves in the garden of Joseph of Arimathea, and Jesus Magus makes time recede to the original Good Friday. Here we find Pilate in despair at his deed of cow- ardice, wandering around; and, touched by the robe of Jesus Magus, has his eyes opened to the presence of the representatives of all the pagan religions, who have gathered here to seek Christian baptism of Jesus Magus. Egeria tells of the closing of the oracles, and by a baptism of light the various gods see what of their doctrines was true, purified and actualized in Christianity, so that they kneel around the sepulchre. Jesus Christ comes out from it, and, followed by Honorio and Jesus Magus, descends to 264 OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS the Bosom of Abraham, whither sink all the pagan gods, including the goddess Rome. Here Jesus Christ undergoes two moral cruci- fixions, first in not being able to redeem the children who had died without baptism, and second because He cannot again die for the sinners in hell, as once He died for man on earth. Returning to Golgotha, He embraces the Cross, as less painful than hell's physical suffering, which is less terrible than the moral crucifixion, for human life is a real expiation of faults and sins. At the tomb of Lazarus, Honorio and Jesus Ma- gus find Mary of Bethany, who in vision sees the death of Christ, the evangelists, apostles, martyrs, saints, doctors and heroes of the Church. The Trum- pet of Judgment sounds, and calls them to the Valley of Jehoshaphat. But all our heroes are terrified, and, refusing to meet the Judge voluntarily, they flee. Satan, on seeing Honorio yet grieve at Sole- dad's being converted into pure spirit, tempts him by an apparition of Soledad. Honorio falls, and flees to Gethsemane, and thence to Christ. Thence he sees ascend to Heaven Mary of Bethany, Jesus Magus, Peace and Palaciano. But Honorio, re- membering that the Earth yet contains Solitude's ashes, to Heaven prefers the Earth, and kisses it, whereupon Hell opens to receive him. Jesus Magus cries to him to look up to see the grief of his mother, who weeps a tear of sorrow. Soledad gathers it, and drops it on Honorio's forehead, which tear in him produces repentance. Hell closes ; OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS 265 in the tear, Honorio discharges the weight of his sins, and ascends to Heaven in company with his mother, Peace. So long an outline of Campoamor's 'Universal Drama' finds its excuse and justification in the fresh- ness and power of the subject, which could not be grasped in a few words. May we not also point out the beauty of the 'Rosary of the Paraclete,' and of the 'Hymn of Pythagoras' ? There is no death; 'tis only an oblivion Of weary brain collapsing from the soul; And they most live, who best can yet remember The tender graces of departed days. Our brilliant evanescing inspirations Are haunting mornings of some other life; For when I chance upon some real pleasure. And taste, I turn and cry, ' 'Tis not this one.' I know there is something I adore and worship — But whom loved I ? and where, and when and how? Certain am I, I am of Nature's kindred, No race is strange, familiar are all climes; And in my sorrows I detect the incense Of ancient error on the altar slain. As in my sins I feel the unbroken vision Of Judgment Days that shall atone and cleanse. Confused, I feel the just Eternal Presence In various splendors, breathing through my dreams 266 OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS And as all beings trend in one direction "What was, what is, what shall be is the same. Whose revelation is but dim perception: So, soul, believe and feel and hope and wait on God. Earth is the theatre of love unfailing. In which we labor to receive a crown; And all our knowledge is but recollection Of former triumphs, and of former tears. Love much! For love is spring of transformation; Love wisely! For we grow to what we love; And love with sacrifice! True love's privations Tell it from lust's desire of desire. Nor fear thou loss of that which thou so lovest: Happy the loser who has danger lost; Fated is he who grasps unweighed desires; While losers wear the robe of memory, As widowhood's virginity perpetual Is holier than a virgin ignorance. We live in memory of our ideals. And in their power greet a worthy death As speedy gate unto a new vocation In regions earned, beyond a natural fate. 'Tis future chances, stirring in our spirits. Masked as convictions, truths and principles; Discoveries are only revelations. Traditions vague of services divine! Guesses of fresher birth are martyr's challenge, And not unsure his immortality! Hence turn your insults into prayerful pardon, OUTLINES OF GREAT DRAMAS 267 And turn revenge to Jove solicitous; The bitterest foe is messenger from heaven; And injudicious friend, temptation masked. Nothing can harm that comes from the external. The only danger is our own desire. Nor cling to any object of affection. Stars in their courses fight against repose; All that persists must sometime, somehow alter — Yet, as it perishes, it most persists! The only immortals ate the birds of passage Changing with seasons, following the sun To land of sunshine of perpetual summer — The Wise are pilgrims to that Holy Land! But Palestine is not a certain country — 'Tis but where'er true holiness is lived. Let me forget the long unworthy ages And travel, in a dreaming memory. Unto prophetic birth, from the Immortal Which yet shall grow to be my destiny! 268 Flaubert's st. anthony Flaubert's *Ibe Temptation cf St. Anthony. Who was Gustave Flaubert? Of course, a novel-writer 1 Such would be the almost universal answer; just as, in his day, Goethe was, by his contemporaries, known as a dramatist, a physicist, a lyric and idyllic poet.' But from youth to old age, Goethe was haunted by Faust; and likewise, Flaubert by the 'Temptation of Saint Anthony.' So Goethe and Flaubert are, preeminently, proph- ets; and it is their message we value, and which we must decipher. 'Faust' contains a drama, — the 'old human story,' which is so poignant that a probably im- mortal opera was made of its first part. Of course. Saint Anthony begins where this 'old human story' leaves off; that lesson he has already learned — alas ! For thus he loses our most living interest. Saint Anthony can be nothing but a 'second part Faust ;' it is the tragedy of the soul, a fourth century 'Robert Elsmere,' for whom theology seems so in- timately united to piety, that because he remains pious, he is fated to soul-tortures, and the destined, inevitable dawn of evolution of thought to scien- tific study of life has to appear, most skillfully indeed, under the guise of the classic legends of monstrosities. Flaubert's st. anthony 269 This lack of objectivity, of dramatic action was noticed by Flaubert's friends Du Camp and Bouil- het, who insisted on his writing what really amounts to a 'first part Faust' — though unconnected with Flaubert's masterpiece — the 'old human story,' in 'Madame Bovary.' Flaubert should have written 'Thais,' or Anthony's Youth. The dramatic action of the Second Part Faust is not indeed sufficiently great a success, for us to feel justified in criticizing Flaubert too much for its lack. Indeed, Flaubert does not attempt a 'drama' of human salvation. No, the temptations of a saint between sunset, through the witching hours of the night, till sun- rise cannot possibly amount to more than a 'Wal- purgis Night.' If then we grasp in our minds this limitation of the subject, we can criticize Flaubert's work by contrast with Goethe's; and thus we can, without fear of contradiction, observe a marked progress. Goethe's Walpurgis Nights are almost provincial: — 'classic' and 'teutonic' Flaubert's is christian, philosophic, classic, ethnic, and scientific —to such a point, that the index of names extends to 1250 words; and he who will read the work without learning some valuable rare fact?, must indeed be erudite! Goethe's Walpurgis Nights are also chaotic; Flaubert's is well organized and logically developed. Indeed, this is no great credit to Flaubert, for his first sketch was just as chaotic and redundant as Goethe's; and had Goethe, like Flaubert, spent his whole life-time organizing and 270 Flaubert's st. anthony developing his Walpurgis Nights, he would no doubt have made a greater success of them. Flaubert's 'Temptation of Saint Anthony' is pre- served to us in three forms, showing the life-long industry by which alone, probably, even a genius must pass to produce a master-piece. In its last form Lafcadio Hearn has translated it for the English-speaking world; and it consists of seven scenes. The first scene introduces us to Anthony person- ally, on his rock by the Nile; he tells us his story, his disappointments, his childish natural impulses — which to him seem sin. Anthony's natural hunger introduces the second scene's temptation — wealth, good food, political power. He castigates himself; but only rouses the natural impulses which attract the Queen of Sheba in all her oriental beauty and splendor; but she is finally repulsed. In the third scene his former pupil Hilarion points out to the saint the fallacies of all his the- ological beliefs: the orthodox committing crimes; the heretics surpassing in asceticism and martyrdom ; the divine commanding even cultural study of paganism. Miracles occur in all religions ; the Gos- pels seem full of contradictions and impossibilities. Saint Anthony acknowledges the recurrence within himself of all these doubts. So Hilarion invites him to study secret knowledge and philosophy. In the fourth scene, therefore, Hilarion intro- FtAUBERX's ST. ANTHONY 27 1 duces Saint Anthony into the basilica of philosophy. Here are found Manes, the Gnostics, St. Clement of Alexandria, Origen, the Elkhesaits, Carpocra- tians, Nicolaitans, Montanus and Maximilla, Bardesanes, the old Ebionites, and finally the ser- pent-worshipping Ophites. Then Saint Anthony Is taken among the martyrs in the arena, who will not die in company with the Montanistic martyrs; while some of them are ready to recant. Then there are the Christian wives of pagan husbands, hysterically treasuring relics of martyrs; the Hindu 'gjTTinosophlsts,' or brahmanic ascetics; Simon Magus and Helena ; last, Damis with ApoUonius of Tyana, whose biographic echoes of the gospel story, and whose offers to teach all Knowledge confuse Saint Anthony to the point of drawing tears, even while he is resisting and driving away the Tyanian pair of friends. Their alluring descriptions of ethnic divinities introduce* to Saint Anthony, in the fifth scene, the brahmanic triunlties, Buddha, Cannes the Babylonian Fish-god, fetishes, Ormuz, Diana of Ephesus, Cy- bele and the Galli, Atys, Isis with her child, the Olympic heaven, and the coincidences of compar- ative religion — which are ultimately dissipated by Saint Anthony's memory of the Apostles' Creed. When all passes, what remains? Oneself, who is godless science. Saint Anthony in this recognizes the Devil who succeeds in arousing the curiosity of the truth-searching saint. 272 Flaubert's st. anthony So, in the sixth scene, this truth-searching Devil carries Saint Anthony upwards through the starry universe to show him there is no personal god beyond it, however much the self-deceiving human heart desire a personal God. This pantheism destroys Conscience. Philosophic scepticism corrodes belief, and this pessimism ends, in an invitation to Saint Anthony to worship the Devil, as last resort; but the Devil is driven away by Saint Anthony's look of hope. The seventh and last scene opens on Saint An- thony's rock, with the saint in despair at the bank- ruptcy of philosophy. Nothing is left but his childhood's memories of the girl he used to love, Ammonaria. Considering this a sin, he is in des- pair at the double temptation, — his own sins as well as the doubts of truth. He would suicide, by throw- ing himself down the precipice; he is encouraged to do this by an old veiled woman, who is joined by a younger; they turn out to be Death and Luxury, or Destruction and Sin. On being repulsed, they disappear; they merge into a rose-crowned-skull — another form of the devil. If then death also is an illusion, nothing remains but substance in its various forms. Matter is then only the objectification of natural forces, which mythology pictured as the Sphinx, the Chimera, and all the fabled monster- nations told of by Aelian and classic poets. These symbolize the stages of evolving organic life, from prehistoric animals to the more recent existing forms of life; searching into whose being science will dis- Flaubert's st. anthony 273 cover truth. This activity brings St. Anthony peace, and as he wakes up at dawn, he sees in the rising sun — that is, in these developing natural forces, — the divine Face, a new revelation; so encouraging the hermit, that he makes the sign of the cross, and again starts to pray. When Flaubert began, he planned a panoramic pageant of the fourth century; but the industrious labor of a life time developed this, like Victor Hugo's 'God,' into a soul-development, started by physical needs, through sectarianism, philosophy, national ideals, pantheism, to scientific research as the foundation of the newer revelation of the true old religion and personal piety. APPENDIX TopicaJ Outlines. anT) Lists qf Books. LOUP I. THE ETHNIC SOURCES. /. The Hindu, Persian, and Muhammddan Sources. The Mahabharata. The Ramayana. rhe Kural. !Tie Kusa Jatakaya. The Prem Sagara. lie Drama: The Earthen Play-cart. 7. Barlaam Legends. 8. The Shah NamSh. 9. The Antar Cycle, the Mu-' al- la-qat and the looi nights. 10. The Quran. //. The Chinese and Japanese Sources. Confucius and Mencius. 4. The Chinese Drama : Pi-ka-ki. The Later Classics. 5. The Japanese Legend. The Later Poetry. 6. The Japanese Poetry. ///. The Egyptian, Assyria-Babylonian, and Zarashustrian Sources. 'he Egyptian Ritual. The Egyptian Poetry. !"he Egyptian Story. !"he Babylonian Legend. The Babylonian Epos. IV. The Homeric Sources. lomer, Iliad and Odyssey. rheir Origin. /"irgil, ^neid. The Fharsalia, Punica and Homer- ica. rhe Argonautica ; Hero and Lean- der. 6. The Babylonian Poetry. 7. The Zarashustrian Literature. 8. The Hebrew Nationalism. 9. The Hebrew Talmud and Qab- balah. 6. The Lusiad, Henriad, Jerusalem Delivered, and the T^l^maque. 7. The Paradise Lost, the Messias. 8. Stagnelius' Blenda, and Arany' s Toldi. 9. Mistral's Mir6io. V. The Surviving Aboriginal Sources. Greenland and Lapland Songs. The North American Indians, Songs and Degrees, rhe Nahuatl Poetry and Comedy. The Quiche Poetry and Prayer. VI. The Northern Sources. rhe Eddas. lunic Poetry, ["he Saga. tiacpherson' s Ossiar jjnnrot's Kal6vala. 5. The Quiche Drama, Ollanta. 6. The Polynesian Folk Song. 7. The Malagasy Poetry. 8. The Malay BidasarL 6. The Lettisch Folk Song. 7. The Fairy Tale ; the two Theo, ries of Propagation. 8. The Nursery Rhyme. GROUP II. THE HISTORIC SOURCES. /. The Grceco-Roman Sources. 1. The Greek Tragedies. 2. The Latin Tragedies. 3. The Greek Comedies. 4. The Latin Comedies. 5. The Novel. 6. The Idyll. 7. The Moralists. //. The Mediceval Sources. 1. The Nibelungen and Gudrun Cycie. 2. Beowulf. 3. The Minnesingers. 4. Reinecke Fuchs, and its origins. 5. The Chanson de Roland, and the Cid. 6. The Welsh Mabinogion : the Arthurian Cycle. 7. The Mediaeval Legend. 8. The Gypsy Ballad. ///. The Slavic Sources. I. Bohemia. 3. Poland. 3. Croatia and Servia. 4. Russia : The Bilina. 5. The Tale. 6. The Drama and Poetry. 7. The Nove) IV. The Soteriological Sources. 1. The Divina Commedia. 3. The Faust Cycle. 2. The Faery Queen. 4. Shelley's Prometheus Unbound V. The Neo-Dramatic Sources. 1. The Indian Renaissance. 2. The Scandinavian-Slavic Dramas. 3. The Spanish Drama. 4. The ItaUan Drama. 5. The German Drama. 6. The French Drama. 7. The English Drama. VI. The Lyrical Sources. 1. The Hebrew Psalms. 2. The Persian Lyric Era. 3. The Nahuatl Hymns. 4. The Japanese Lyric. 5. The Slavic Lyric. 6. The Scandinavian Psalm. 7. The German Psalm. 8. The Italian and Spanish Lyric. 9. The French Psalm. 10. The English Psalm. 11. The American Psalm. I. The Victors. 1. Gautama Siddhartha. 5. Plotinos. 2. Xenophon's Sokrates. 6. Tauler. 3. Rabbi HilleL 7- F^nflon. 4. Fhilostratos' Appolonius of Tyana. 8. Emerson. //. The Soteriological Dramas. The Book of Job. 1 1 . Goethe, Faust, I and II. Kschemisvara : the Wrath of 12. Bunyan, the Pilgrim's Progress. Kausika. 13. Spenser, Faery Queen. The Buddhist Parable of the Prod- 14. Byron, Manfred. igal Son. 15. Shelley, Prometheus Unbound. The Parables of the Kingdom. 16. Longfellow, the Golden Leg- Plato's Republic. end. Aischulos, Prometheus Bound. 17. Tolstoi, the Power of Dark- Kebes, the Picture. ness. Augustine, the City of God. 18. Hugo, God. Alighieri, the Divine Comedy. 19. Ibsen, Brand. Calderon, the Prodigious Magician. ///. The Graco-Roman Moralists. flesiod. 5. Seneca, ipiktetos. 6. Julian. Vlarcus Aurelius. 7. Boethius. licero. 8. Theophrast. Group I. The English Prophets. klilton. 7- Browning. Pope. 8. Gerald Massey. Seats. 9- Swinburne, shelley. 10. Edwin Arnold. iVordsworth. 1 1. Matthew Arnold. Elizabeth Browning. 12. Tennyson. Group II. The American Prophets. Longfellow. 5. Whitman. Holmes. 6. Lanier. Lowell. 7. Taylor. Whittier. 8. Bryant Group III. The Persian Prophets. felalu-u'd-din. 3. Sadi. i§.nu. 4- Omar Khayyim. Group IV. The European Prophets. Rueckert. 7- Ada Negri. Vrchlicky. 8. Father Cats. Becquer. 9- de G6nesteL Tegner. lo- Ibsen, fohanna Voigt-Ambrosius. 1 1. Nikitin. Leopardi. «2. von Gaudy. !K Topic./* for Every Sund&.y of the Year ^ Bible Lessons according to date of Month of each Sunday. Each 6 Psalms may be used as Canticles, 3 for Morning, 3 for Evening Service, JlNtumn and mint er— Cbe Golden Uirtues, Alternate Readings. Jlutumn, first l)alf Psalm 8 Praise, 42-43 Prayer, 91 Trust, 84 Aspiration, 15 Purity, IZ4 Worship September 22, the Feast of All Saints. Color, Purple. First Sunday After, Austerity, S. John of the Cross. Second, Balance, Seneca's 'Morals'. Third, Chastity, The Chinese 'Classic of Purity'. Fourth, Duty, The Works of Mencius. Fifth, Earnestness, The Poems of Omar Khayyam. Sixth, Freedom, The Bhagavadh Gita. Seventh, Genuineness, The Distychs of Angelus Silesius. Eighth, Holiness, Jakob Boehme's 'Aurora' and Letters. Ninth, Immortality-Desire, Swedenborg's Heaven and Hell. Tenth, Justice, Edwin Arnold's 'Light of Asia'. Eleventh, Knowledge, Hugo of S. Victor, or Bacon. Twelfth, Light (Inner) Plutarch's 'The Daemon of Socrates'. Thirteenth, MEAN-Doctrine, Aristotle's Nikomachean Ethics. Olinter, Second l)y Virgil, adaptation thereof to Roman purposes. ArgOnautica, Dionysiaca, later silver age epics. Ollanta, ancient Peruvian drama, of sacrifice and flowers. Popol Yuh, picturesque scripture of the Quiches of Guatemala. Edda, hymns and cosmogonies of the ancient Norse. Kalevala, a heroic Odyssey of the Finns. Niebelungen Lied, Gudrun, heroics of the Rhenish Teutons Beowulf, Anglo-Saxon slayer of the dragon Grendel. MabinOgion, Welsh chronicle and lays. Ossian, an accessible representation of Celtic lays. Chanson de Roland, ancient French Cariovingian epic. Chronicles of the Cid Campeador, Spanish liberation epic. Mireio, by Mistral, powerful modern Provenjal epic. The Most Import&.nt Acce^.rible Book./'. Yob vill nevet tegtct stsdyiog or bnTing any or all of these. Sanity and valae of Jsdgment depend ptimarily on acquaintance with Facts. Seward's School of Life, Pott, N.Y. Baron du Prel, Philosophy of Mysticism. Alliance Co. N.Y. E.VAUCHAN, Hours with the Mystics, London. Max Mueller, Physical, Physiological, and Psychological Religion, 3 vols, Macmillan, London. Diogenes Laertes, Lives of Philosophers, Bohn, Bell, London P.Carus, Gospel of Buddha, Open Court Co, Chicago. ScHWEGLER, History of Philosophy, New York. H.H0EFFDING, Psychology; Ethics, Macmillan. E.Plammarion, The Unknown, Harper, N.Y. Conn's Evolution of To-day, Putnam, N.Y. Grant Allen, Flowers and their Pedigrees, London. Karl Pearson, Grammar of Science, Ginn or Heath, N.Y. Max NORDAU, Degeneration, Appleton, N.Y. Stewart and Tait, The Unseen Universe, Macmillan. J. Freeman Clarke, Ten Great Religions New York. Comte d'ALViBLLA, Philosophy, English Translation, London. T. J.Hudson, The Law of Psychic Phenomena,McClurg,Chicago Moll, Hypnotism, in Walter Scott's Scientific Series, London. Ethics, by Spencer, Sidgwick, Mackenzie, or Muirhead, Lepevre, Race and Language, Appleton, N.Y. Lenormant, Beginnings of History. Scribner, Drummond, Natural Law in the Spiritual World J.Alden, NY. Fiske, Idea of God, and Destiny of Man, New York. For History, Keary's Dawn of History, Smith's History of the East, Cox's Greece, the Student's Abridged Gibbon, Bryce's Holy Roman Empire, forming a continuous story Taine's History of English Literature, Hurst Co., N.Y. Ward's English Poets, 4 vols., Macmillans. Andrew Lang's Myth, Ritual and Religion Macmillans. Humboldt Library of Science Catalogue, Fifth Ave, N.Y. Herbert Spencer's Synthetic Philosophy, Appleton, N.Y. Small and Vincent's Introd. to Sociology, A.B.C., N.Y CbC Golden UirtUC$, ^tt^ illustrative Readings. Jlusterity — Marcus Aurelius' Meditations. Balance — Philostratos' Life of Apollonius of Tyana. £[hastity — Tennyson's The Holy Grail. (Galahad) Duty — Matthew Arnold's Poems. Earnestness — Saint James Catholic Epsitle. freedom — Voltaire's Poems and Trails. Genuineness — Carlyle's Sartor Resartus. |)oliness — Whittier's Poems. Tmmortality-desire — Tennyson's In Memoriam. Justice — Gerald Massey's Tale of Eternity. I^nowledge — (Sokrates) Xenophon's Memorabilia. Eight (inner) intelligible — Fox's writings. jnean-doftrine — The Chinese Four Books. Hirvanic Rest — (Gautama) The Buddhist Scriptures. (Jrder — Pope's Essay on Man. Praftice of the Presence of God — Brother Lawrence. Quietness — Fenelon's Spiritual Letters. I^esignation — Muhammad's ^uran. Jtoicism — Epiketetos' Discourses. femperance — Porphyry's de Abstinentia. tJnity — Origen's de Principiis. {feneration — Emerson's Divinity School Address. misdom — Goethe's Faust, I iff II. X-Ecstasy — Plotinos' Enneades. ^earning for Heoven — Plato's Republic. 2eal-~-(Ann Lee) Precepts of the Elders. SECOND APPENDIX Bibliography and References to the Text. Bibliography BIBLIOGRAPHY Ambrosius, Johanna, Poems. Tr. by Ellen Kullmann, Lon- don, Sherrat & Hughes 1910. Boston, Roberts, 1896. Ed. by Karl Schrattencal. Konigsberg, Thomas & Oppermann, 1897. Anglo-Saxon Chronicle, Bede. Arnold, Edwin, Poems. Hurst & Co. Arnold, Edwin, Poems. Macmillan. Assyrio-Babylonian, Die HoUenfahrt der Istar, Ein Alt- babylonisches Epos nebst Proben Assyrischer Lyrik, Dr. Eberhard Schrader. Giessen, J. Ricker, 1874. (B. P. L. 3026.52.) Athanasius, Orations Against Arians Ancient and Modern Theol'l Library, London. Australian Poets. Douglas, B. W. 1788-1888. Sladen, London and Sydney. Griffith, Farran. Okeden & Welsh, 1888. Agnes Neale, Keighley Goodchild, John Plummer. Bede, Venerable, Ecclesiastical History of England, also A. S. Chronicle. J. A. Giles, London; Bohn. Babylonische Hymnen und Gebete in Auswahl. Dr. Heinrich Zimmern. Leipzig, Hinrichs, 1905. Browning, Mrs. Eliz. Barrett, Poems. Hurst & Co. Browning, Robert, Poems. 6 vol. Edition, with Asolando. Clough, Arthur Hugh, Poems. London, Macmillan, 1885. Dana, Chas. A., Household Book of Poetry. Appleton, 1858 Emerson, Poems, Nature Addresses, etc. Houghton, Mifflin & Co. Eichendorflf, Sammtliche Werke. Leipzig, C. F. Amelang's Verlag, 1883. Falke, Gustav, p. 399 in Carl Busse, Neuere Deutsche Lyrik. Hendel, Halle, 879-885. Feisi, p. 243, Persischer Diwan. Hendel, Halle Ferid-ed-din Attar, p. 85, in Persischer Diwan. Hendel, Halle. Flaubert, Mme. Bovary. Frechette, Louis, Les Fleurs Boreales. Paris, Rouveyre, 1881. Frieda, Emil, Gedichte. Leipzig, Reclam, see Vrchlicky, Jaroslav, pseudonym. Geijer, Erik Gustav, Gedichte; Reclam, 352. Bibliography De Genestet, P. A., Der St. Nikolaus Abend. Hendel, Halle, 49, 50. Gerock, Karl von, p. 127 in Carl Busse, Neuere Deutsche Lyrik. Hendel, Halle, 879-885. Goethe, Faust. Gustav Hempel, Small Edition. Goodchild, in Australian Poets. Gulistan, by Sadi. London, Richardson, 1823. Henckell, Karl, Deutsche Dichter seit Heinrich Heine. Bard, Marquart & Co., Berlin. Holmes, Oliver Wendell, Poems. Houghton, Mifflin & Co., Household Edition. Hitopadesa: Sanskrit Fables and Proverbs. Morley's Edi- tion. (Also in Edwin Arnold's Poems.) Translated by Chas. Wilkins, Geo. Routledge & Sons. Islandische Dichter der Neuzeit, J. C. Poestion. Leipzig, G. H. Meyer, 1897. Ibn Jemim, see Persischer Diwan. Jami, Salaman and Absal. Bernard Quaritch, 1879 (N. Y. P. L.). Jeluladin, 'Rumi,' p. 122, Persischer Diwan. Hendel, Halle. Japanese Classical Poetry. Tr. Basil Hall Chamberlain. London, Triibner, i88o. Kalbeck, Max. p. 389 in Neuere Deutsche Lyrik, Carl Busse. Hendel, Halle, 879-885. Kebes, the Picture; The Greek Pilgrim's Progress,' tr. by Kenneth S. Guthrie, Comparative Literature Press, Philadelphia. Khoi-Koi, in Amazulu Religion. Kochanowski, p. 52 in Polnische Dichtung, Weiss. Hendel, Halle, 529-530. Kolzow, Alexei, Gedichte. Reclam, 1961. Lanier, Sidney, Poems. Scribner, 1888. Lettische VoUcslieder und Mythen, Andrejanofif. Hendel, Halle, 954. Mahmud Schebisteri, p. 146, Persischer Diwan. Hendel, Halle. Masnawi, Jeluladin. Triibner, London. Manuel, Infant Don, p. 62 in 'Eine Blfitenlese aus Span- ischen Dichtern,' Hart Stuttgart, Spemann, 257. Meredith, George, Ballads and Poems of "rragic Life. Roberts Bros., Boston, 1887. Mills, Chas. D. B., Pebbles, Pearls and Gems of the Orient. Boston, Ellis, 1882. Milton, Poetical Works, Crowell. Mirza Ali, on p. 252 Persischer Diwan. Hendel, Halle. Neale, A. P., in Australian Poets. Fate, Ada Negri. Tr. by A. M. Von Blomberg. Boston, Copeland & Day, 1898. Bibliography iii Frat. Treves, 4 1. Fatalita Tempeste Maternita Dal Pro- fondo. Nizami, p. 72, in Persischer Diwan. Hendel, Halle. Ancient Nahuatl Poetry, with Introd. Notes, and Vocab. Daniel S. Brinton, 1887. Omar Khayyam, Rubaiyat, Fitzgerald, Transl. Thomas B. Mosher, Portland, Me. Peladan, Josephin, Le Vice Supreme. Paris, Edinger. Petoefi, Alexander. Reclam, 1761, 1762. Plummer, J., in Australian Poets.' Polonski, p. 207 in Aus Russischen Dichtern,' Tschernow. Hendel, Halle, 277-279. Popol Vuh, Brasseur de Bourbourg, Paris. Puschkin, Alexander, Gedichte. Reclam, Leipzig, 3731.2. Rossetti, Christina G., Poems. Boston, Roberts Bros. Rossetti, Dante Gabriel, Poems. Crowell. Riickert, Friedrich, Gedichte, Auswahl. Handel, Halle. 1002, 1003. Runic Poetry, Five Pieces, translated from the Icelandic, ■with originals. Anonymous. Percy Thomas. Publ. R. and J. Dodsley, 1763. No. 6874.23 in Boston Public Library. Saadi, p. 98, in Persischer Diwarn Schrader, Eberhard, Hollenfahrt der Istar. Giessen, J. Richer, 1874 Shah Nahmeh, of Firdausi, Trans. Edward Atkinson. Scheffler, John, (Angelus Silesius) Cherubic Pilgrim. Halle, Niemeyer, 1895. Translated by E. Vitalis Scherb. Schewtschenko, p. 155, 'Aus Russischen Dichtern,' Tscher- now. Hendel, Halle, 277-9. Schoenaich-Karolath, Prinz Emil zu, p. 391, Carl Busse, Neuere Deutsche Lyrik. Hendel, Halle, 879-885. Seeger, p. 120 in Das Schweizerland im Liede, Bothtner. Hendel, Halle, 636-638. Maurice von Stern, p. 413, Neuere Deutsche Lyrik, Carl Busse. Hendel, Halle, 879-889. Shelley, P. B., Poems. Belford, Clarke & Co. Shi King, Simienski, p. ill in Polnische Dichtung, Weiss. Hendel, Halle, 529-530. Swinburne, Poems. Crowell. Taylor, Bayard, Poems. Houghton & Mifflin, Household Edition. Tennyson, Alfred, Poems. Macmillan. Tegner, Esaias; Ausgewahlte Poetische Werke, Vol. 2. Stuttgart, Speeman, 34. Tools for Teachers, William Moodie. New York, Whit- taker, 1895. iv Bibliography Tsutschew, p. 147, in 'Aus Russischen Dichtern,' Tschernow. Hendel, Halle, 277, Gedichte von Alexei K. Tolstoj. Reclam, Leipzig, 3371. Vrchlicky, Jaroslav, pseudonym; see Emil Frieda. Whitman, Walt, Leaves of Grass. McKay, Phila. Whittier, J. G., Poems. Houghton & Miffln, Boston, Small Edition. Wordsworth, Wm., Poems. Macmillan. Zulu : Amazulu, Thos. B. Jenkinson. London, Allen, 1882. Zimmern, Heinrich. Keilinschriften und Bibel nach ihrem religionsgeschichtlichen, Zusammenhang. Berlin, Reuter & Richard, 1903. 53, (i) pp., lUus. pis. 8°. 3425-23- Zimmern, Heinrich. Babylonische Hymnen und Gebete in Auswahl. Leipzig, J. C. Hinrichsche, Buchhandlung. 190S, 8° No. 3 in 3043.230,7 Weber, Otto, Dr. Die Literatur der Bablonier und As- syrer. Leipzig, Hinrichs, 1907, 8°. 3043.231.2 Percy, Thomas. Five pieces of runic poetry, translated from Icelandic language, with the originals. [Anon.] R. and J. Dodsley, 1763. gg, (i) pp. Sm. 8°. 6874.23 References i References 23- Jami's Salaman and Absal. Meaning p. io6. 34. Japanese Friendship, Chamberlain's Classical Poetry, p. 6i. 43- Babylonian, Hoellenfahrt der Istar, Schrader; o. p. 88; 440, p. 90; b. 92; c. 97; d. 100; e., f., g., from Records of the past III o. s., p. 134, 136. 45, SI. Asha Vahishta, from a Study of Zoroastrianism, Rawlin- son, Ancient Religions, 75, 76. 57. Nahuatl Poetry, Brinton, p. 177. 61, 62. Eddas. Complaint of Harold. From a book of Runic poetry in Boston Public Library, by Percy Thomas, p. 61, from p. 80; p. 62, from p. 78. 680. M. Arnold Philomela, 216; 6. Whitman, One's Self I Sing; 2. Song of Myself, 30; c. Shakespeare, Troilus and Cressida, 3.3. 690. Faust, Goethe, I, Triiber Tag, p. 143, Mephistopheles ; 6. Mrs. Browning, Aurora Leigh, s p. 403; c. Proverbs 7. 27. 700. Mrs. Browning, Aurora Leigh, 3, 360; 6. Tennyson, In Memoriam, 55, p. 300. 710. St Augustine, Confessions, I. i. 73«. Browning, Paracelsus, p. 116; 6. Tennyson, By an Evolu- tionisti 812 ; c. Baghavadh Gita, see 10, s ; d. Swinburne, Atalanta in Calydon, p. 15. 74a. Whittier, Miriam; b. Nibelungen Lied, passim; c. Tenny- son, Sir Galahad, p. 104; d; Malory's Morte Arthur, 16. 4. 750. Tennyson, Idylls, Holy Grail, p. 210; 6. Rossetti, D. G., Mary's Girlhood, p. 156; c. Puschkin, 131 Ein Gebet; d. Bayard Taylor, The Vineyard Saint, p. 72. 760. Lowell, Unverified; 6. Shelley, Prometheus Unbound, p. 220; c. Whittier, Miriam, 424; d. Longfellow, Happiest ii References Land, 22; e. Whittier, Between Souls Pass Away So Soon ; /. Johanna Ambrosius, Dost thou ask, p. 15 ; g. Rueckert, Adventlied, end p. 1 99; h. Ada Negri, name- less, p. 2. Malachi, 2. 10; Rueckert, Advent Hymn, end; c. Emil Frida, (Vrchlicky) Aus der Hymne des Lazarus, p. 28, end; d. Tennyson, Locksley Hall 60 Years After, p. 757; e. Browning's Paracelsus, p. 115; /. Scheffler 6. 192? See Briha, Upanishad in Mills' Gems of Orient, 672; g. Hugo's Bird a moment lighted; h. Hebrews, 11. 13. 78a. Ali Mirza, Alkoran der Liebe, 27, p. 262; 6. Ada Negri, Mistica, p. 72 ; c. Mrs. Browning, Sonnets Port. 27 ; p. 147 ; d. Robert Browning, Asolando, Summum Bonum, p. 11. 800. Sar Peladan, Josephin, Le Vice Supreme; h. Lovelace, Richard, p. 253, Dana Book of Household Poetry; c. Wordsworth, Skylark, p. 213; d. Prince Schoenaich- Carolath, p. 393, end of Lieder an Eine Verlorene; e. Mrs. Browning, Futurity, 81 ; Consolation, 80. Sia. Shi King I. V. 2, p. 83, The Happy Recluse; 6. Tennyson, In Memoriam, 47, p. 299; c. Rueckert, Angereihte Perlen, P- 337i 1- 9. 10; d. Tennyson, Guinevere, Idyls; e. Ros- setti, D. G. Mary Magdalene, p. 157; /. Mrs. Browning, Georges Sand, 85. 82(1. «4. 850. Edwin Arnold, Iliad of India, p. 374; h. Shelley, Prome- theus Unbound, p. 225 ; c. M. Arnold, The Strayed Reveler, 209; d. Khai Khosrau, Atkinson's Firdausi, Shah Nahmeh, 118-246; e. Dante, Par. 33. 138; f. Holmes, Nearing the Snow-line, p. 249; g. Whittier, The Eternal Goodness, 388; h. Mrs. Browning, Aurora Leigh, 2. p. 343; t. JeluladiB, 'Prayer,' translated Jas. Freeman Clarke. St. Matth. 5- 6. Isaiah, 4a. 3. St. Matthew 5. 8; &. Jer. 31. 28; c. Holmes, Wind-Clouds and Star-drifts, 8, p. 197; d. Whittier, Prelude, 401; e. Jeremiah 31. 28; /. Whittier, Haverhill, 568. 86a. Whittier, My Psalm, 296; Questions of Life, p. 194; 6. Milton, Paradise Lost, iv. 200; c. Matthew Arnold, Progress, 253, 254; d. Holmes, The Two Armies, p. 162. References iii 870. Khayyam, Omar, Rubaiyat, 51 (71); h. Dante, Hell, 3. 9; c. Milton, Paradise Lost, i. 97; 2. 459; d. M. Arnold, p. 183 ; Youth of Man, 251 ; e. Tegner, Friedensworte, V. 12, p. 13; /. Longfellow, Ladder of St Augustine, 221 ; g. Whittier, Laying up Treasure, 526. 880. Holmes, Nautilus, p. 161 ; 6. Mrs. Browning, Aurora Leigh, I, p. 337; c. I Cor. 15. 32; d. Browning, Ben Karshook's Wisdom, vi. p. 385. 89a. Hesiod, Works and Days, 309-313 ; 6. Goethe, Faust, Prologue in Heaven, p. 14; c. Browning, Asolando, p. 114; d. Frieda, (Vrchlicky) Beim Niederreissen des Strafhauses St. Wentzel in Prag, pp. 36, yj- 90a. M. Arnold, Morality, 256; h. Goethe, Faust I, Easter Song of Angels, p. 30; c. Meredith, Poems, Boston Edi- tion. 91a. Pope, Essay on Man, 2. 104; 6. Milton, Paradise Lost, 6, 660. etc., 2. 430; c. Mrs. Browning, Aurora Leigh, 8, p. 329; d. Hitopadesa, p. 23; e. Geijer, 'Wiking,' p. 10; /. Ruechert, Vierzeilen, 5; g. A. K. Tolstoi, p. 78. No. 73, V. 2. 920. Whitman, Song of Myself, p. 74; 6. Rueckert, Angereihte Perlen, p. 92, 1. 3, 4; t. Emerson, Self-reliance, Essay 4. Sacrifice, in Quatrains, 243, etc.; d. Kochanowsky, Trau nicht dem Gliicke, fin. ; e. Goethe, Faust I, Faust Mono- logue, after Wagner exit; /. Pope, Essay on Man, 4, 149; g. Hitopadesa, p. 42. 93a- Frieda (Vrchlicky), p. 128, Weit, wie weit! h. Homer, Odyssey I. 35, etc.; c. Hitopadesa, p. 23; d. Longfellow, A Fragment, 437; e. Edwin Arnold, p. 394, Hitopadesa; /. Longfellow, Unverified; g. Milton, Paradise Lost, 5, 520. 94a. Mrs. Browning, Aurora Leigh, 8, p. 468; h. Whittier, A Spiritual Manifestation, 435. 95a- Matth. 22, 14; 6. Matth. 7, 14. 96a. I Cor. 9, 24; b. Lowell, Rhoecus, 40. 970. Bayard Taylor, Serapion, p. 121; 6. Baghavad Gita, 7, 3; c. Meredith, Poems, Boston Edition; d. Emerson, Ex- perience, p. 228, Poems; e. M. Arnold, In Harmony with iv Reference* Nature, S; /. Ibn Jemim, Persischer Diwan, p. 156; g. Tennyson, Locksley Hall Sixty Years After, p. 761 ; h. Meredith, Poems, Boston Edition. 98a. Mrs. Browning, Aurora Leigh, 8 p. 466; 6. Longfellow, L'Envoi, 441 ; c. Holmes, Wind-clouds and Star-drifts, 6, p. 19s ; d. Tennyson, In Memoriam, end, p. 323. 99a. Mrs. Browning, Aurora Leigh, 7, p. 452; h. Tennyson, Higher Pantheism ; c. Goethe, Faust, i, Spirit's First Appearance; d. Pope, Essay on Man, 4, 332; e. Athan- asius. Against the Heathen ; /. Mrs. Browning, Isobel's Child, 13; g. Bradford, Eliz. Knight; h. Mrs. Brown- ing, A Vision of Poets, 220. See Aurora Leigh, 12 p. 498. looa. Emerson, Brahma, p. 100, Poems; 6. Maurice Stern, Pfingstmorgen, p. 413; c. Whittier, The Overheart, 290; d. Jelluladin, Diwan, 4. II ; e. Browning, Pippa Passes, I. p. 388; /. J. Plumraer, Australian Poets, p. 406; g. Gulistan, Sadi, 2. Apol. 47; h. Rueckert, Angereihte Perlen, p. 337, 1. 12. loio. Wordsworth, London, p. loi ; 6. Frieda (Vrchlichy), Der Begleiter, p. 96; c. Rueckert, Angereihte Perlen, p. 336, I. II, 12; d. Mrs. Browning, The Seraphim, 2; e. Keats, end of Ode to a Grecian Urn; /. Mrs. Browning, Aurora Leigh, I, p. 333; g. Lowell, Parting of the Ways, p. 386, 7- 1020. Rossetti, D. G., Mary Magdalen, p. 157; &. Sheffler, 3. 8; c. E. Arnold, Pearls of the Faith, 76; d. Baghavad Gita, 16, 21 ; e. Kebes, Picture, 6 ; /. Jami, Salaman and Absal, II, p. 81; g. Feriddin Attar, see p. 103; h. i Cor. 13. I2. 1030. Tennyson, Higher Pantheism, 123 ; 6. de Genestet, Laien- gedichte 3. p. 47; c. Mrs. Browning, Aurora Leigh, 8. p. 461; d. M. Arnold, Rachel, 179; e. See Lanier's 'Clover,' Bayard Taylor, L'Envoi, p. 66; /. Wordsworth, Intimations of Immortality, s, p. 359; g. Ferriddin Attar, Kleinod der Substanz, 1. 15-18; h. M. Arnold, Em- pedocles on Etna, p. 448. 1040. Whittier, First Day Thoughts, p. 120; 6. Longfellow, Caspar Becerra, 136; c. Lowell, Vision of Sir Launfal, 117; d. Polonski, 'Die Innere Stimme,' 7. 5; e. Tjut- schew, 'Friihling,' v. 4, p. 152; /. Omar Rubaiyat, 33 (34) ; 9- Milton, Paradise Lost, 3, p. 68 ; h. Keats, Endymion, 2, 1. 313; i. Whittier, First Day Thoughts, References v 210; j. Jami, Salaman and Absal, l, p. 69; k. Mrs. Brown- ing, Aurora Leigh, i, p. 333; /. de Genestet, Laien- gedichte, 4, p. 49; m. Sclieffler, 5, 67; n. Kalbeck, Max, Trostspruch. 1050. (Know thyself) Sesostres, Ancient History of the East, Smith; h. Socrates, Memorabilia of Xenophon; c. (Chn. Fathers), Clement of Alexandria; d. Goethe, Faust i, Faust, discussion with Wagner; e. M. Arnold, Em- pedocles on Etna, 473; /. Geijer, 'Manhem, v. 7, p. 4; g. Sokrates, Memorabilia, Plato's Dialogue on Death of Socrates; h. Hartley Coleridge, 'Prayer;' i. Rueckert, Vierzeilen, p. 344, 44; ;'. Simienski, Spriiche, vi; k. Scheffler, i, 61 ; /. Pope, Essay on Man, 2, 1,2; m. Emer- son, Divinity School Address; n. Emerson, 'Good-bye, proud World;' 0. M. Arnold, Empedocles on Etna, end, P- 473- 1060. M. Arnold, Empedocles, p. 444; b. Goethe, Faust I, Night, Monologue, end; c. Tennyson, Higher Pantheism, 17; d. Pope, Essay on Man, 2, 204; e. Mrs. Browning, The Seraphim, 2; /. Shelley, Epipsychidion, p. 359 (see Prom. Unb., p. 239) ; g. Whittier, The Word, 524; h. Acts, 17, 27; Luke, 17, 21; t. Lettisch, Perkhon, fin.; /. Words- worth, Intimation of Immortality, 8, p. 359; k. Mrs. Browning, Aurora Leigh, 163; I. Jami, Salaman and Absal, II, p. 80. 1070. Dante, Parad. 9, 7, etc. ; b. Scheffler, i, 72 ; c. A. P. Neale, In the Midnight, p. 396; d. Feisi, Serre, v. 9; e. Jami, Salaman and Absal, II, p. 80; /. Mahmud She- bisteri, Rosenflor des Geheimnisses, p. 147, 1. 3-6; g. de Genestet, Letzten der Ersten Gedichten, 27, p. no; h. Rueckert, Literatur und Leben, i p. 333. io8a. Mrs. Browning, Aurora Leigh, 7, p. 452; b. Henckel, Karl, German poet ; c. Lanier, Sidney, The Crystal, p. 29; d. Petoefi, p. 200, 'Die Dichtkunst;' e. Tegner, Sivea, p. 27 ; /. Nizami, Magazin der Geheimnisse, 2 ; g. Kolzow, 'Der Mensch,' p. 82; h. Whittier, Cesarius in The Men of Old, p. 180; i. Pope, Essay on Man, 4, 248; Holmes, Wind-Clouds and Star-drifts, 8, p. 197; /. Shelley, Prome- theus Unbound, p. 246. 1090. Pope, Universal Prayer, 14-17; b. Omar Khayyim, Rubaiyat, 66, 67; l. Milton, Paradise Lost, 4, 20; d. E. Arnold, Iliad of India, p. 379; e. Longfellow, Humphrey- Gilbert, 132. yi References iioa. Rueckert, Nachklang, p. 348; b. Whittier, Hermit of The- baic!, 225;, Norembega, 427; Vision of Eckard, 489; c. M. Arnold, Rachel, 179; d. SchefHer, 3. 93, 113; e. Pope, Universal Prayer, 49-52; /. Lowell, Vision of Sir Laun- fal, 117; g. Uhland, Beggar, p. 167; h. Christina Rossetti, Despised and Rejected, p. 287; i. Lowell, Vision of Sir Launfal, 117. ma. Goethe, Faust I, p. 56, Faust to Mephistopheles. 112a. Tennyson, Choric Song, p. 43; b. Homer, Odyssey, 6, 95 sqq. ; c. Keats, Endymion, i, beginning ; d. Wordsworth, Intimations of Immortality, see Enterprise, p. 607. 1130- Tegner, Nachtmahlskinder, p. 93 ; b. Prince Schoenaich Carolath, Sang des Tiirmers, p. 394; c. de Genestet, Laiengedichte, 7, p. 49; Unermiidet, p. 97; d. Frieda, (Vrchlicky) Bei Entdeckung der Pyramide von Meydun, p. 18; e. Rueckert, Angereihte Perlen, p. 338, 1. 25, 26; /. Mrs. Browning, To Georges Sand, 85. 114a. Meredith, Poems, Boston Edition; b. Lowell, Godminster Chimes, p. 385; c. Mrs. Browning, Aurora Leigh, 7, p. 452; d. Gerok, Ich mochte Heim, p. 129; e. Schoenaich Carolath, Lieder an einer Verlorene, p. 393 ; f. Gustave Falke, Gebet, p. 401; g. G. Herbert, 'Pulley' in 'The Cloisters.' 1 1 60. Whitman, Song of Myself, p. 49; Song of Myself, p. 44; b. Goethe, Faust II, Akt I, p. 51, Faust; c. Dante, Farad. I, i, 62. 1 170. Bede, 2. 13; p. 95, Wordsworth, Eccl. Sonn, i. 16. See Leixner, p. 380, Busse, Neue Deutsche Lyrik; b. Frieda (Vrchlicky), Bei Entdeckung der Pyramide, p. 17; c. Schewtshenko, 'Wenn ich Sterbe,' 1. 11; d. Mrs. Brown- ing, The Soul's Traveling, 52; e. Pope, Essay on Man, 2. 294; /. Tennyson, In Memoriam, 50, p. 299; g. Holmes, Wind-clouds and Star-drifts, 11, p. 203. 1 180. Khoi-Khoi, In Religion of Amazulu; b. Egyptian, Un- verified; c. Babylonian, Book on Assyrian Hymns, in Boston Public Library; d. Chinese, Unverified; e. Jeluladin, Diwan, 15. 10-12; /. Flaubert, Mme. Bovary; g. Mrs. Browning, Futurity, 8i. Browning, 2. 4, Abt Vogler, 10, p. 184; 6. Rueckert, Angereihte Perlen, p. 337, 1. 29, 30; c. Tennyson, Higher References vii Pantheism, p. 123; d. Mrs. Browning, Aurora Leigh, 8, p. 469; Rhyme of the Duchess May, 253; e. Tennyson, Higher Pantheism, p. 123 ; /. Jeluladin, Diwan, 8 ; g. Seeger, Wengern Alp, fin. 1200. Frechette (Canadian) ; i. Les Oiseaux de Neige, p. 140; ]'. Longfellow, Sound of the Sea, 387; k. Wordsworth, Elegiac Stanzas on Peele Castle, p. 217; /. Tennyson, In Memoriara, 55, p. 300; m. Dante, Par. 33. 138. 12I0. Whittier, Minister's Daughter, 522; b. Isaiah 9. 6; c. Ed- win Arnold, Pearls of the Faith; d. M. Arnold, The Divinity, 183; e. Popol Vuh, beginning. 1220. Khoi-Khoi, in Religion of Amazulu. For Unkulunkulu, see Bishop Callaway in Jenkinson, p. 32; b. Kochanow- ski, 'Herr was verlangst du?'; c. Whittier Miriam, 425; d. Malachi, 2. 10; e. Tegner, Friedensworte, v. 5, p. 11. See Tools for Teachers, 134, The Flight of Mahommed. See Masnawi, 6, 17; Jeluladin. See Mills, Gems from Orient, 654. 123a. Unverified ; b. Mrs. Browning, Aurora Leigh, i, 321 ; c. Unverified; d. Rueckert, Mitternacht, p. 348; e. Mrs. Browning, A Child's Thought of God, p. 68. 124a. Mrs. Browning, Cry of Children, 301 ; 6. Dante, Par., 26, 38; c. Christina Rossetti, The Master is Come, p. 69; d. Shelley, Prometheus Unbound, p. 230. 1250. Whittier, The Vision of Eckard, p. 488; b. Whittier, The Two Rabbis, p. 409; c. de Genestet, Letzten der Ersten Gedichten, 18, p. 93; d. Buddhist, Prodigal Son, Sacred Books of East, 21, p. 98, Saddharma-pundarika ; e. Lowell, The Changeling, 90; /. Unverified; g. Mrs. Browning, Isobel's Child, 44. 126a. Whittier, Vision of Eckard, 488: 6. Hesiod, Works and Days, 122, 123; c. Unverified; d. Martin Greiff, on 'All Saints ;' e. M. Arnold, Lord's Messengers, 231 ; /. Whit- tier, The Two Angels, 501. 1270. Christina Rossetti, Despised and Rejected p. 287; 6. Frieda (Vrchlicky), die Aussatzigen, pp. 22, 23; c. Sadi, Bostan, in Persischer Diwan, 102; d. E. B. Browning, Aurora Leigh, 3, p. 375; e. Rueckert, Angerethte Perlen, p. 338; /. Ephes. 4, 13. 1280. Job, 38, 2; b. Longfellow, Resignation, 134; c. M. Arnold, viii References To a Friend, 2. 129a. Pope, Essay on Man, 4. 14s; b. Neale, 'A. P. Australian 'Midnight,' p. 394; c. Joti. Ambrosius, Conflict and Peace, p. 10; d. E. B. Browning, Aurora Leigh, 8, p. 469; e. R. B. Browning, v. 4, Abt Vogler, 9, p. 184; /. A. Tennyson, In Memoriam, 128, 126, pp. 321, 320. 1300. Beowulf, line 703 ; b. Ps. 45, 6 ; Is. 52, 32 ; c. Omar Khayyam, Rubaiyat, 51; d. Eichendorff, An die Freunde, I. 144; e. Tegner, Das Ewige, p. 55; /. Shelley, Adonais, p. 374; g. Clough, Arthur Hugh, Poems, p. 49. 1310- Greek, Isaiah, 13, 6; b. Daniel, 5, 25; c. Hosea, 8, 7." d. Matth., 7, I ; e. Sadi, Bostan, in Persischer Diwan, p. loi ; /. Pope, Essay on Man, i, iii, 112; g. Whitman, Song of Myself, p. 48; h. Book of Dead, ch. 125? From book in Boston Public Library. 1320. Longfellow, Retribution, 97; b. Emerson, Suum Cuique, in Quatrains, 238; c. Goethe, Faust I, p. 55, Faust to Mephistopheles; Pt. II, Act I, p. 16; d. M. Arnold, Empedocles on Etna, 451 ; e. Pope, Essay on Man, 1, 119-122. 133a- Kenneth Sylvan Guthrie. 1340. Lowell, Vision of Sir Launfal, 122; 6. Whittier, Trimtas, 293; c. M. Arnold, Pis AUer, 230; d. Whittier, Our Master, 391. 1350. Goethe, Faust I, p. 64. Mephistopheles to Student, p. 83 in the Witch's Kitchen; b. de Genestet, Laiengedichte, 12, p. 52 ; 20, p. 54 ; and 42, p. 63 ; Ihr und Wir, p. 74 ; c. Rossetti, D. G., Soothsay, p. 281 ; d. Pope, Essay on Man, 3, 303 ; e. E. B. Browning, Aurora Leigh, 4, p. 386. 1360. R. Browning, v. 4, p. 187, Rabbi Ben Ezra, 12; b. Good- child, Australian Poets, p. 178, Too Late; c. Nizami, Spriiche, 8; d. Jami, Salaman and Absal, i, p. 59; e. Infant, Don Manuel, Spruche, 2; f. M. Arnold, To a Republican Friend, 6. 1370. Tennyson, In Memoriam, 106, p. 315. UNVERIFIED QUOTATIONS Readers will confer a favor by supplying reference 740, 76a, 123c, i2Sf, 126c. Of eonttitisnioii will) 6o(l» By Kenneth Sylvan Guthrie, A.M., Harvard, Ph.D., Tulane. In Four Books: Of Love; Of the Presence of God; Of Adora- tion; Of Peace. It was the aim of the Author to write a book of Devotion, freed from the mystic incoherence of the Theologia Germanica, and from the repulsive bloody dogmatism of other books that have frightened so many souls away from personal communion with God by identifying in their minds Devotion with the immoralities of Vi- cariousness and superstitious Fanaticism. How far this attempt has succeeded the following words tell: The Literary World: Is not unworthy to be laid alongside of Gold Dust and the Imitation AS FOOD FOR THE SOUL IN ITS MOST SACRED HOURS. Are these meditations all your own, Mr Guthrie, or are they translations or adaptations? . . Not very long ago, in speaking what were intended to be words of high commendation for a little devotional worlc . . we used language which has been erroneously and unfortunately interpreted as implying a doubt of its originality. Perhaps our language was open to that interpretation, though in comparing the book with Gold Dust and the Imitation, and asking the author in a tone of friendly ^miliarity whether his meditations were his own, or the adaptations or translations of another's, we meant not disparagement, but COMPLIMENT, and to signify our sense of the UNUSUAL MERIT of his pages. We wish now to make the expression of that sense plain and unequivocal, and to say in so many words what we aimed to say then by implication, that the book, though small and easily to be overlooked, IS ONE OF THE STRIKING AND REMARKABLE BOOKS OF ITS CLASS, THE LIKE OF WHICH SELDOM APPEARS, and that Mr Guthrie is its true author. Dr MiEL, Ed. L'Avenir: I have read it with as much interest as edification and cannot but congratulate you for having thought, felt, and written it. All the chaiaffceristics of the truly Christian Life are there presented in an attractive and impressive manner. Though short it is complete. The spirit of Christ breathes throughout all its lines. It should become the Vade Mecum of every Christian. The Living Church : A valuable little book to promote devout meditation. Southern Churchman : Very good, with wise and excellent thought. Bishop Gailor, of Tenn. : Is admirable I like it very much, and believe it will be helpfiil to all devout people. The Congregationalist: It expresses tender spiritual sensitiveness ... It will be found helpful by many, and is prettily printed. Net price, cloth bound, post-paid, 78 cents. tu goisparalsve Efterature Press, BEOOKLYN: 182 Monroe Street. LONDON: Luzac & Co., 46 Gt. Eussell St., W. Obrary of Personal Religion. Works by HcwuefD SylMH fiutbric Of Cdiittttunion wUD @od A Manual of Intimate Devotion, On the order of Thomas a Kempis' Imitation of Christ, but freed from everything repellent to unsectarian devo- tion. Warmly commended by the Boston Literary World, the Living Church, the Southern Churchman, the Con- gregationalist, I Avenir, Bishop Gailor, and others. Contents: Of Love, of the Presence, of Adotation, of Peace Net price, cloth bound, post-paid, 78 cents. Of the Presence of 6oa Unpartisan Devotional Instructions for its Practice, With a Vision of Judgment, and of Heaven. The First Systematic Treatise on the Subject. Contents: How the Presence is Discovered: its History, Nature and Practices; of the Destined Perpetual Presence. Net price, cloth bound, post-paid, $1.04. $0M9$ Of tfte Presence, Being i)ymn$ Of Intimate Devotion. Original Words and Music, expressing all moods of in- ner experience, suited to unsectarian religious circles, as well as for individual consolation. PartiCttlarly popular are the Listening Song:, Hymn of Peace Price, bound, 79 cents; per dozen, $5.50, postpaid. tU Caaaer of @oa, ana otber Sermons. Practical Sermons for home reading, as first preached in the Church of the Incarnation, Philadelphia. Particularly ftelpfUl are Patience of God, Silence, the Keys Net price, cloth bound, post-paid, $1-06. De eomparatlve Oleratnre Press, BKOOHOn : lHoMsaHjat, i$2 J1!onroe Street tmmn -, mzm % ^o, u m, i^usseii $i m. Dbrary of Presentation BooKlets^ Written, Edited or Translated by Kcnn«th Sylwn QMMt f rkndsbip, l^uman and Divine. An essay composed of pulsating polished paragraphs showing the transformation of earthly into celestial love. TaVOrltC Paragraphs are Friendship as Healer, Consoler; Recognizing Friends; Divine Distance; Heavenly Friend. Net price, cloth bound, postpaid, 53 cents. Sayonara, or tfte testing of tbe Poet. Translated from the French of Crncst a'BervHly. A charming, powerful one-act Japanese play, easily pres- ented by one man, and three women. Often given at the Comedie FranSaise, in Paris. It makes a delightful half-hour parlor reading. Net price, 54 cents- Cbe CreeK Pilgrim's Progress, Being a translation from the Greek of Cfte PICturc, by HeDes, supposed to be the so-named disciple of Sokrates A scientific, unsectarian allegory of the ascent of life. With original pictures illustrating the Pilgrim's progress In ornamental type, with copious symbolical illustrations Contents: The Gate of Birth to Life and its Delusions, the Road Upwards to Happiness; Those who Fail, and Why; the Value of Science; What is Good and Evil. Net price, clotfi bound, post-paid, 79 cents. famous l)ymns to the Universal Divinity, By Kleantbes, Derzbaoin, mordswortD, Symonds, Cennyson, With the rare Greek Text of the Hymn of Kleanthes. Net price, cloth bound, post-paid, 53 cents. Cbe Genius of Sokrates, by Plutarcb One of the choicest treasures of antiquity on hfe's mean- ing, and the Divinity. Contents: Who the Genii Ar^ the Vision of Timarchus, the Care of the Genii. Net price, cloth bound, post-paid, 53 cents. tu e>mptim\n Literature Press, BKOOHOK : Hlonsalvat, i$2 monroe Street conDon { tuM^ % 00, 46 et. Russeii St. m. lU SreeK Tilsrim*$ Progress* Generally known as The Picture, by Kebes, A disciple ofSokrates, and the friend of Plato. This book is one of the few treasures of antiq- uity which has not ^rown old. Without the cut- ting out of a single passage, it can he read with pleasure and profit at the present day. It is short enough to be read at a single sitting. It sets forth in picturesque imagery and scient- ific ideals the Progress and Ascent of the Soul. The human soul, passing through the Gate of Life, must, under the guidance of Scientific Recognition, avoid the mazes of the wrong uses of the sciences. By ac- quiring virtues, it climbs the Mountain of True Cul- ture to the Temple of Happiness, whence it returns to guide upwards souls still below. Its divisions are L The Gate of Life, and its Delusions. II. The Road upwards to Happiness. m. Those who Fail, and Why. IV. The Value of Science. V. What is Good and Evil? The book might be called a Panorama of Modern Scientific Ideals of Life. Rewnctb Sylwn mtttrk has turned it into English and drawn the explanatory illustrations. It is printed and ornamented in a symbolic style suitable to the text. Handsomely bound, postage paid, net, 79 cts. tU fLmpuum Btttmn Press, BEOOKLYN: 182 Monroe Street. LONDON: Luzac & Co., 46 Gt. RusseU St., W. Cwo Jfttractive Bool^lets of Dtm by Kenneth Sylvan Guthrie J{ Garland of Tancies To the Head of an Elk To the Heavenly Friend Kassandra The Robber The Voice of Egypt Hymn to Mediaeval Art Marriage in Retrospect After a Visit to Aged Friends My Unseen Passengers God Will Provide Woodland Vision To the Heavenly Pilot The Steeps of Parnassus j1 Mariana of n$piration$ Call to Prayer The Rock of Ages Love to God Plea to Serve Bear Patiently An Invocation for Peace The Little Things A Psychological Prayer A Sacramental Prayer The Good Shepherd Song of the Silence Appeal for the Christ's Coming The Wine of the Soul Just the thing for a delicate, ontjsoal gift Price, 25 cents each, post-free. Per dozen, $1.60 These editions are limited to actual subscribers. Every copy is signed by the author. Copies can be secured only from Cbe eoittparatlve Eiterature Press 182 Monroe Street, BEOOKLYN, N.Y. Dbrary of Mmtm Religlott. By H«nn«fft Sylvan Sutftrie, A.M., Hatvard; Ph.D., Tulane; M.D., Medico-Chirorgical, Phila. Everything necessary for clear comprehension, by Every Man, of Zoroaster's Hymns, or Gathas. Life gf Zoroaster in Words cf his Hymns. Contrasting on opposite pages the Two Doctiments. TMs is the result of a discovery as epoch-making In this field, as was that of the Elohlst and Je- hovistic Documents in the Pentateuch, and resulted from application of the now well-proven methods of the biblical Higher Criticism. Net price, cloth bound, post-paid, $1.32. Significance qf Zoroaster's Teachings. This analyzes the whole subject from the stand-point of the Higher Crit- icism of the Gathas; explaining the growth of the Archangelic Pantheon, of the various Cults, of Zoroaster's successive education therein, of his combination thereof, and of his significance as Leader of the Thou^t- R.eIii